Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n body_n life_n quicken_v 5,163 5 10.2542 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A49845 Observations upon Mr. Wadsworth's book of the souls immortality and his confutation of the opinion of the souls inactivity to the time of general resurrection, 80. Layton, Henry, 1622-1705. 1670 (1670) Wing L758; ESTC R39124 150,070 217

There are 33 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

have_v do_v conceive_v it_o be_v intend_v by_o the_o word_n spirit_n in_o this_o place_n to_o signify_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o two_o constituent_a part_n of_o his_o person_n and_o by_o the_o ordinary_a figure_n of_o synecdoche_n set_v one_o part_n for_o the_o whole_a the_o word_n spirit_n here_o seem_v to_o intend_v the_o whole_a person_n so_o as_o under_o this_o term_n of_o spirit_n the_o petitioner_n intend_v to_o recommend_v themselves_o or_o their_o whole_a person_n the_o one_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o father_n under_o who_o custody_n his_o body_n as_o well_o as_o his_o soul_n viz._n his_o whole_a person_n remain_v and_o be_v preserve_v without_o see_v corruption_n until_o the_o time_n and_o hour_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o i_o conceive_v st._n stephen_n prayer_n be_v make_v in_o a_o like_a sense_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n that_o our_o lord_n be_v be_v mr._n w._n say_v further_a he_o do_v not_o know_v of_o any_o such_o phraesed_a petition_n as_o these_o be_v put_v up_o by_o either_o of_o they_o or_o any_o other_o person_n in_o prayer_n but_o just_a at_o the_o moment_n of_o die_v i_o will_v therefore_o refresh_v his_o memory_n by_o quote_v to_o he_o and_o our_o reader_n psal_n 31.6_o where_o the_o very_a same_o word_n be_v use_v into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n for_o thou_o have_v redeem_v i_o o_o lord_n thou_o god_n of_o truth_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o appear_v the_o psalmist_n be_v in_o health_n at_o the_o utter_n of_o this_o petition_n but_o withal_o in_o a_o state_n of_o great_a trouble_n as_o the_o forego_n verse_n testify_v and_o it_o thence_o seem_v somewhat_o clear_a to_o my_o understanding_n that_o by_o these_o word_n our_o prophet_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o recommend_v to_o god_n protection_n his_o spirit_n of_o life_n or_o seperative_a soul_n only_o but_o that_o rather_o in_o those_o word_n he_o intend_v to_o recommend_v to_o god_n care_n and_o protection_n his_o whole_a compositum_fw-la of_o soul_n and_o body_n his_o person_n or_o himself_o without_o have_v any_o particular_a or_o singular_a respect_n to_o his_o spirit_n of_o life_n or_o soul_n whatsoever_o the_o same_o may_v be_v which_o seem_v may_v be_v somewhat_o mo●e_n clear_v by_o a_o short_a paraphrase_n into_o thy_o hand_n o_o god_n i_o commend_v myself_o for_o thou_o have_v redeem_v i_o this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o true_a mean_v of_o david_n word_n and_o i_o take_v the_o prayer_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o st._n steven_n to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o import_n and_o that_o they_o have_v no_o such_o other_o emphatical_a signification_n as_o mr._n w._n in_o this_o place_n endeavour_n to_o put_v upon_o they_o p._n 80._o he_o say_v if_o his_o interpretation_n of_o those_o word_n be_v true_a they_o clear_o express_v the_o soul_n immortality_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v this_o but_o withal_o conceive_v that_o his_o interpretation_n of_o these_o word_n be_v not_o true_a as_o my_o foregoing_a answer_n testify_v and_o then_o i_o think_v no_o man_n can_v believe_v that_o they_o be_v a_o good_a proof_n or_o any_o proof_n at_o all_o for_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n p._n 82._o he_o say_v the_o word_n spirit_n here_o intend_v separate_a soul_n and_o if_o it_o do_v not_o mean_a so_o he_o desire_v to_o know_v what_o it_o do_v mean_a and_o i_o have_v say_v before_o that_o it_o intend_v the_o whole_a person_n of_o the_o petitioner_n as_o it_o be_v a_o compositum_fw-la of_o soul_n and_o body_n mr._n w._n far_o demand_n what_o the_o word_n spirit_n here_o mean_v and_o whether_o it_o mean_v the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n here_o i_o be_o at_o a_o loss_n what_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n and_o if_o he_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o life_n of_o the_o person_n he_o mean_v that_o which_o have_v no_o good_a sense_n in_o it_o for_o the_o body_n quatenus_fw-la tale_n or_o divide_v from_o the_o person_n have_v no_o sort_n of_o life_n in_o it_o as_o st._n james_n tell_v we_o a_o body_n without_o a_o spirit_n be_v dead_a and_o therefore_o to_o mention_v the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n without_o a_o figurative_a intent_n incline_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o bull_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o if_o one_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o life_n of_o a_o dead_a thing_n he_o than_o demand_v what_o be_v it_o the_o dead_a carcase_n the_o whole_a m●n_z body_n and_o soul_n put_v they_o together_o as_o if_o the_o dead_a carcase_n be_v the_o whole_a man_n body_n and_o soul_n intend_v to_o confound_v these_o term_n and_o give_v to_o each_o of_o they_o a_o equipollent_a signification_n as_o if_o the_o dead_a carcase_n and_o the_o whole_a man_n body_n and_o soul_n signify_v the_o same_o thing_n whereas_o i_o must_v divide_v they_o and_o say_v the_o dead_a carcase_n signify_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o whole_a man_n body_n and_o soul_n or_o the_o person_n signify_v another_o thing_n and_o though_o the_o carcase_n shall_v go_v to_o the_o dust_n as_o it_o be_v yet_o the_o person_n shall_v be_v preserve_v the_o good_a sleep_v in_o christ_n and_o the_o bad_a remain_v under_o the_o knowledge_n and_o disposal_n of_o god_n until_o the_o time_n of_o refresh_a shall_v come_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o trumpet_n shall_v sound_v and_o all_o person_n who_o have_v live_v shall_v be_v raise_v and_o summon_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n and_o therefore_o from_o the_o word_n as_o i_o have_v expound_v they_o i_o think_v the_o direct_a contrary_n to_o what_o he_o say_v that_o no_o good_a argument_n can_v be_v raise_v from_o our_o first_o quote_v text_n for_o prove_v his_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n the_o nine_o argument_n page_n 83._o mr._n w._n quote_v rom._n 10.11_o and_o if_o christ_n be_v in_o you_o the_o body_n be_v dead_a because_o of_o sin_n but_o the_o spirit_n be_v life_n because_o of_o righteosness_n and_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o he_o that_o raise_v up_o jesus_n from_o the_o dead_a dwell_v in_o you_o he_o that_o raise_v up_o christ_n from_o the_o dead_a shall_v also_o quicken_v your_o mortal_a body_n by_o his_o spirit_n that_o dwell_v in_o you_o and_o he_o say_v upon_o this_o text_n methinks_v this_o truth_n of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n do_v very_o clear_o shine_v in_o the_o evidence_n of_o this_o scripture_n i_o answer_v that_o what_o shine_v so_o clear_o to_o he_o i_o do_v not_o at_o all_o discover_v p._n 84._o mr._n w._n proceed_v in_o a_o long_a discourse_n which_o i_o think_v rather_o confound_v and_o mislead_v than_o open_v and_o declare_v the_o mean_v of_o st._n paul_n word_n and_o yet_o i_o have_v no_o intent_n to_o implicate_v myself_o with_o he_o upon_o that_o subject_a especial_o in_o many_o word_n p._n 85._o he_o raise_v a_o exception_n out_o of_o st._n paul_n doctrine_n but_o i_o think_v it_o be_v out_o of_o his_o own_o brain_n and_o invention_n not_o perceive_v that_o paul_n think_v of_o such_o a_o objection_n nor_o that_o he_o make_v or_o intend_v any_o answer_n to_o it_o but_o mr._n w._n himself_o both_o tell_v the_o tale_n and_o give_v the_o answer_n and_o there_o he_o say_v further_a if_o you_o ask_v how_o come_v the_o soul_n thus_o to_o over-live_a the_o body_n he_o answer_v by_o a_o perplex_a repetition_n of_o some_o other_o word_n in_o the_o chapter_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o expound_v as_o by_o a_o old_a rule_n mala_fw-la expositio_fw-la corrumpit_fw-la textum_fw-la and_o then_o he_o draw_v out_o of_o that_o exposition_n what_o i_o do_v not_o find_v in_o the_o text_n but_o will_v not_o particularize_v for_o avoid_v of_o length_n and_o confusion_n p._n 86._o here_o he_o propound_v another_o objection_n to_o st._n paul_n doctrine_n and_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v well_o aware_a of_o it_o and_o therefore_o give_v it_o a_o answer_n but_o i_o think_v he_o be_v mistake_v in_o both_o not_o find_v by_o the_o text_n that_o st._n paul_n ever_o think_v of_o it_o and_o therefore_o do_v not_o design_n to_o give_v it_o a_o answer_n and_o special_o such_o a_o answer_n as_o mr._n w._n in_o this_o place_n have_v do_v he_o proceed_v and_o raise_v a_o three_o objection_n against_o st._n paul_n doctrine_n but_o do_v not_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v aware_a of_o this_o or_o make_v any_o answer_n to_o it_o but_o mr._n w_n invention_n and_o construction_n be_v ready_a to_o give_v it_o a_o full_a answer_n but_o not_o such_o a_o one_o as_o i_o be_o willing_a to_o consent_v unto_o p._n 87._o mr._n w._n say_v have_v thus_o clear_v up_o the_o text_n by_o give_v you_o its_o mean_v i_o proceed_v now_o to_o lay_v down_o my_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n die_v not_o with_o the_o body_n i_o answer_v some_o
observation_n upon_o mr._n wadsworth_n book_n of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n and_o his_o confutation_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n inactivity_n to_o the_o time_n of_o general_n resurrection_n 80._o print_a london_n 1670._o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n page_n 2._o he_o say_v there_o be_v certain_a sober_a professor_n of_o christianity_n who_o though_o they_o deny_v the_o existence_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n yet_o they_o maintain_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n at_o the_o last_o day_n to_o receive_v recompense_n according_a to_o their_o deserve_n in_o this_o life_n and_o thereupon_o ask_v the_o question_n be_v not_o that_o sufficient_a to_o uphold_v religion_n and_o a_o due_a reverence_n of_o god_n in_o the_o world_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o question_n he_o say_v there_o be_v some_o professor_n among_o we_o who_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n as_o some_o of_o the_o quaker_n be_v say_v to_o do_v but_o yet_o believe_v the_o return_v of_o the_o spirit_n to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o and_o then_o conclude_v that_o between_o one_o of_o these_o opinion_n and_o the_o other_o all_o recompense_n future_a to_o this_o life_n may_v come_v to_o be_v discredit_v and_o explode_v upon_o which_o his_o manner_n of_o argue_v i_o observe_v that_o he_o seem_v to_o set_v up_o if_o not_o invent_v the_o opinion_n of_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o person_n and_o yet_o believe_v that_o humane_a spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v they_o concern_v which_o opinion_n i_o say_v i_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o like_a before_o which_o make_v i_o think_v it_o may_v be_v a_o invention_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o he_o give_v no_o better_a confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o then_o that_o some_o of_o the_o quaker_n be_v say_v to_o hold_v it_o whereas_o i_o rather_o apprehend_v the_o truth_n to_o be_v that_o neither_o the_o quaker_n nor_o any_o other_o christian_n ever_o do_v or_o do_v deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o further_o i_o conceive_v that_o no_o reasonable_a man_n who_o read_v and_o believe_v the_o scripture_n can_v deny_v or_o very_o much_o doubt_n the_o truth_n of_o that_o prime_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o further_o i_o conceive_v that_o if_o the_o soul_n immortality_n have_v any_o thing_n near_o a_o like_a clear_a proof_n in_o scripture_n that_o we_o find_v in_o it_o for_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a both_o i_o and_o all_o other_o doubter_n of_o such_o immortality_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o assent_v and_o submit_v to_o that_o opinion_n whence_o i_o apprehend_v he_o pretend_v to_o set_v up_o that_o which_o he_o call_v the_o quake_a opinion_n on_o purpose_n to_o discredit_v and_o de●ery_o the_o practice_n of_o man_n set_n up_o their_o rest_n and_o expectation_n upon_o the_o clear_a and_o undeniable_a article_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o that_o article_n be_v too_o well_o found_v and_o too_o clear_o evidence_v by_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v shake_v or_o bring_v in_o question_n by_o any_o invention_n of_o man_n whatsoever_o page_n 4._o mr._n w._n say_v have_v sometime_o find_v my_o own_o mind_n hople_v and_o troublesome_o entangle_v with_o the_o perplexity_n of_o conceive_v how_o my_o soul_n can_v possible_o exist_v in_o a_o separate_a state_n from_o my_o body_n to_o which_o i_o 〈…〉_o so_o strict_o unite_v and_o with_o which_o i_o find_v it_o by_o experience_n so_o much_o so_o sympathize_v in_o this_o its_o union_n thus_o he_o con●●●●_n himself_o to_o have_v doubt_v of_o the_o humane_a soul_n be_v separate_a subsistence_n add_v that_o he_o believe_v divers_a other_o may_v be_v trouble_v with_o the_o like_a doubt_n and_o his_o intent_n in_o write_v this_o book_n be_v to_o propound_v to_o they_o such_o argument_n as_o have_v satisfy_v the_o doubt_n of_o his_o own_o mind_n hereupon_o i_o observe_v that_o this_o author_n be_v by_o profession_n a_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o title_n page_n of_o his_o book_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a read_n wit_n and_o industry_n as_o plain_o appear_v in_o the_o tenor_n and_o course_n of_o his_o write_n that_o he_o be_v a_o true_a and_o sincere_a professor_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o know_v very_o well_o as_o in_o some_o place_n of_o this_o book_n he_o testify_v that_o the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o late_a church_n both_o romish_a and_o reform_v the_o mahometan_a church_n the_o heathen_a priest_n poet_n and_o philosopher_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o proselyte_n of_o that_o church_n have_v profess_v with_o a_o great_a unanimity_n and_o universality_n to_o hold_v and_o believe_v the_o natural_a subsistence_n of_o the_o humane_a soul_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n and_o yet_o the_o natural_a evidence_n of_o the_o strict_a union_n betwixt_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o the_o necessary_a assistance_n which_o the_o one_o of_o they_o give_v to_o the_o other_o for_o the_o production_n of_o life_n and_o action_n in_o the_o person_n appear_v so_o strong_a to_o the_o rational_a mind_n or_o faculty_n of_o this_o writer_n as_o they_o have_v power_n to_o make_v he_o doubt_v of_o the_o possibility_n or_o at_o least_o the_o probability_n of_o the_o soul_n natural_a subsistence_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n and_o hence_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o infer_v that_o if_o a_o man_n frame_v de_fw-la meliori_fw-la luto_fw-la so_o munited_a and_o assist_v as_o this_o writer_n be_v do_v fall_v into_o doubt_n concern_v the_o natural_a subsistence_n of_o the_o humane_a soul_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n it_o seem_v nothing_o strange_a or_o wonderful_a that_o other_o person_n less_o fortify_v shall_v fall_v into_o the_o like_a doubt_n and_o scruple_n that_o he_o do_v without_o fall_v from_o the_o sincere_a profession_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n because_o perhaps_o they_o may_v recover_v from_o those_o doubt_n and_o error_n wherein_o they_o be_v now_o involve_v and_o next_o because_o such_o error_n as_o may_v be_v in_o this_o opinion_n seem_v mere_o speculative_a and_o to_o have_v little_a or_o no_o influence_n upon_o the_o life_n and_o practice_n of_o man_n however_o some_o may_v put_v a_o high_a value_n thereupon_o then_o perhaps_o the_o thing_n itself_o may_v deserve_v for_o that_o it_o common_o seem_v to_o affect_v more_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o die_a than_o the_o restrain_v evil_a person_n from_o sin_v and_o even_o at_o man_n death_n it_o seem_v to_o lay_v more_o terror_n upon_o the_o weak_a and_o fearful_a than_o upon_o the_o most_o sinful_a and_o wicked_a person_n and_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o man_n it_o seem_v provable_a and_o grant_v by_o all_o party_n that_o what_o will_v make_v a_o happy_a immortality_n will_v likewise_o make_v a_o happy_a resurrection_n and_o what_o will_v make_v the_o one_o miserable_a will_v make_v the_o other_o so_o too_o because_o the_o tree_n lie_v as_o it_o fall_v and_z as_o death_n leave_v we_o so_o shall_v judgement_n find_v we_o and_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o if_o man_n do_v happen_v to_o fall_v under_o such_o scruple_n and_o do_v even_o doubt_v the_o natural_a subsistence_n of_o the_o humane_a soul_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n and_o for_o obtain_v better_a satisfaction_n thereupon_o do_v declare_v such_o doubt_n and_o scruple_n to_o the_o world_n with_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n upon_o which_o the_o same_o be_v found_v they_o may_v not_o for_o their_o so_o do_v real_o deserve_v to_o be_v black'nd_v with_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o epicure_n sadducee_n deist_n atheist_n and_o other_o odious_a epithet_n which_o man_n of_o eager_a spirit_n do_v frequent_o use_v to_o bestow_v upon_o other_o who_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o any_o sort_n of_o opinion_n which_o may_v be_v controvert_v among_o they_o and_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o practice_n very_o much_o oppose_a charity_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n page_n 5._o mr._n w._n say_v his_o mind_n in_o this_o treatise_n be_v to_o confirm_v the_o faith_n of_o those_o who_o believe_v the_o soul_n immortality_n or_o to_o raise_v up_o those_o that_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o doubt_n and_o scruple_n before_o mention_v of_o which_o sort_n he_o be_v inform_v there_o be_v not_o a_o few_o among_o the_o otherwise_o serious_a professor_n of_o christianity_n in_o england_n who_o notwithstanding_o such_o scruple_n may_v pass_v with_o our_o author_n for_o good_a christian_n who_o be_v to_o stand_v and_o fall_v by_o their_o master_n judgement_n in_o such_o case_n without_o be_v subject_v or_o subject_v themselves_o to_o the_o sharp_a censure_n of_o other_o violent_a or_o uncharitable_a person_n he_o say_v beside_o such_o doubter_n there_o be_v other_o
to_o offer_v that_o answer_n to_o his_o question_n and_o more_o to_o entangle_v the_o matter_n he_o propound_v a_o new_a question_n demand_v if_o it_o be_v a_o ecstasy_n what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o that_o ecstasy_n i_o reply_v i_o pretend_v not_o to_o be_v able_a to_o tell_v he_o the_o nature_n of_o any_o ecstasy_n trance_n or_o vision_n which_o may_v happen_v to_o man_n because_o i_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v super-humane_a action_n inexplicable_a from_o the_o know_a or_o common_a principle_n of_o humane_a nature_n and_o therefore_o without_o far_a answer_n to_o his_o question_n about_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o ecstasy_n i_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o answer_v before_o give_v viz._n that_o st._n paul_n be_v in_o a_o trance_n at_o that_o time_n be_v enough_o notwithstanding_o his_o say_n that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o and_o that_o it_o will_v pass_v for_o a_o good_a answer_n and_o solution_n of_o his_o first_o question_n upon_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n depend_v i_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o make_v such_o interpretation_n of_o difficult_a scripture_n as_o be_v likely_a to_o satisfy_v all_o peruser_n but_o count_v it_o enough_o if_o thereupon_o i_o can_v satisfy_v my_o own_o understanding_n as_o to_o my_o best_a judgement_n i_o have_v do_v upon_o this_o text_n without_o be_v afraid_a of_o man_n censure_n of_o lose_v the_o mean_v of_o such_o a_o dark_a scripture_n instead_o of_o interpret_n it_o mr._n w._n proceed_v to_o say_v till_o i_o hear_v a_o better_a sense_n give_v of_o this_o text_n of_o st._n paul_n than_o i_o have_v here_o give_v of_o it_o i_o will_v conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n do_v imply_v that_o his_o soul_n and_o so_o all_o other_o man_n soul_n be_v while_o in_o the_o body_n of_o such_o a_o nature_n as_o may_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n to_o this_o i_o reply_v our_o author_n have_v power_n to_o take_v this_o text_n of_o st._n paul_n in_o what_o sense_n he_o please_v or_o think_v most_o reasonable_a as_o all_o other_o reader_n may_v do_v and_o may_v thence_o infer_v and_o conclude_v as_o their_o judgement_n or_o affection_n or_o prepossession_n shall_v persuade_v they_o but_o i_o profess_v myself_o to_o conceive_v they_o build_v upon_o sandy_a ground_n who_o draw_v that_o inference_n from_o the_o relation_n of_o st._n paul_n trance_n or_o any_o other_o text_n quote_v to_o prove_v mr._n w_n three_o proposition_n that_o the_o soul_n can_v subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n because_o i_o judge_v the_o evidence_n by_o i_o produce_v and_o my_o construction_n upon_o his_o text_n do_v more_o clear_o prove_v the_o contrary_n mr._n w_n four_o proposition_n be_v that_o the_o scripture_n affirm_v that_o when_o the_o body_n die_v the_o soul_n be_v actual_o separate_v from_o it_o in_o proof_n of_o which_o he_o quote_v eccl._n 12.7_o then_o shall_v the_o dust_n return_n to_o the_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v return_v to_o god_n that_o give_v it_o upon_o which_o he_o say_v it_o be_v most_o clear_a that_o by_o dust_n be_v here_o mean_v the_o body_n and_o by_o spirit_n the_o soul_n of_o life_n in_o man._n in_o which_o construction_n i_o do_v not_o much_o differ_v from_o he_o but_o do_v easy_o agree_v that_o by_o dust_n here_o be_v mean_v the_o body_n and_o that_o by_o spirit_n be_v intend_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n and_o thereupon_o i_o observe_v that_o these_o word_n of_o solomon_n be_v a_o single_a and_o transient_a expression_n concern_v a_o subject_n not_o mention_v in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o chapter_n either_o before_o or_o after_o and_o without_o a_o particular_a occasion_n give_v or_o offer_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o state_n of_o soul_n after_o death_n and_o seem_v to_o have_v something_o of_o a_o chance_n in_o the_o delivery_n of_o it_o and_o as_o i_o find_v no_o introduction_n to_o this_o expression_n nor_o occasion_n give_v to_o speak_v of_o a_o rational_a or_o intelligent_a soul_n in_o man_n so_o i_o do_v not_o perceive_v that_o they_o do_v either_o mention_n or_o intend_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n to_o be_v such_o a_o soul_n as_o mr._n w._n pretend_v it_o to_o be_v solomon_n be_v here_o treat_v concern_v the_o decay_n of_o man_n life_n and_o recount_v by_o what_o degree_n death_n make_v its_o approach_n till_o at_o last_o it_o prevail_v over_o the_o person_n and_o then_o the_o dust_n return_v to_o the_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v and_o the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o and_o the_o question_n upon_o this_o text_n seem_v to_o be_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o term_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o what_o be_v mean_v of_o its_o return_n to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o our_o author_n say_v that_o by_o the_o spirit_n be_v intend_v the_o soul_n of_o life_n and_o i_o think_v i_o differ_v not_o far_o from_o he_o when_o i_o say_v that_o by_o the_o word_n spirit_n be_v intend_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n we_o know_v that_o solomon_n have_v a_o careful_a education_n under_o a_o pious_a father_n and_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o strong_a inclination_n to_o search_v out_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n and_o thence_o we_o may_v certain_o conclude_v that_o he_o have_v careful_o peruse_v the_o patriarchal_a book_n of_o genesis_n and_o the_o other_o moysaicall_a write_n and_o there_o have_v find_v write_v gen._n 9.4_o flesh_n with_o the_o life_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o blood_n thereof_o shall_v you_o not_o eat_v and_o sure_o the_o blood_n of_o their_o life_n will_v i_o require_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o every_o beast_n will_v i_o require_v it_o and_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o every_o man_n brother_n will_v i_o require_v the_o life_n of_o man_n whoso_o shed_v man_n blood_n by_o man_n shall_v his_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n make_v he_o man._n also_o deut._n 12.23_o thou_o may_v kill_v of_o thy_o herd_n and_o of_o thy_o flock_n in_o any_o of_o thy_o gate_n only_o be_v sure_a that_o thou_o eat_v not_o the_o blood_n for_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o life_n and_o thou_o may_v not_o eat_v the_o life_n with_o the_o flesh_n and_o moses_n say_v cause_n that_o be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o creature_n there_o have_v before_o be_v quote_v god_n breathe_v the_o breath_n of_o life_n into_o adam_n nostril_n and_o the_o breathe_a the_o breath_n of_o life_n into_o adam_n nostril_n and_o the_o breathe_a a_o like_a breath_n into_o the_o person_n raise_v out_o of_o ezekiel_n dry_a bone_n which_o cause_v life_n in_o they_o all_o gen._n 6.7_o god_n say_v i_o will_v destroy_v man_n who_o i_o have_v create_v from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n both_o man_n and_o beast_n chap._n 7.22_o all_o in_o who_o nostril_n be_v the_o breath_n of_o life_n upon_o the_o dry_a land_n dye_v in_o the_o flood_n both_v man_n and_o beast_n be_v suffocate_v and_o drown_v in_o the_o water_n of_o the_o flood_n by_o stop_v those_o passage_n through_o which_o this_o breath_n of_o life_n shall_v other_o way_n have_v enter_v dan_n 5_o 23._o thou_o have_v praise_v the_o god_n of_o silver_n and_o gold_n but_o the_o god_n in_o who_o hand_n thy_o breath_n be_v thou_o have_v not_o glorify_v intend_v god_n in_o who_o hand_n thy_o life_n be_v such_o a_o life_n as_o through_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v produce_v and_o maintain_v by_o breath_n and_o breathe_v these_o quotation_n seem_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n be_v a_o compositum_fw-la of_o part_n as_o well_o as_o his_o body_n and_o that_o the_o composition_n of_o such_o spirit_n of_o life_n require_v be_v of_o blood_n and_o breath_n the_o blood_n and_o humour_n of_o their_o body_n and_o their_o spirit_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o life_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n by_o maintain_v and_o nourish_v the_o glow_a and_o yet_o lambent_a flame_n of_o life_n which_o act_v their_o organical_a body_n and_o cause_v a_o continual_a circulation_n of_o their_o blood_n to_o that_o purpose_n and_o no_o less_o necessary_a for_o the_o produce_v and_o maintain_v of_o life_n be_v that_o breath_n which_o god_n first_o breathe_v into_o adam_n and_o since_o have_v communicate_v and_o continue_v to_o all_o his_o posterity_n which_o have_v be_v procreate_v from_o that_o time_n to_o this_o there_o pass_v a_o principle_n of_o life_n in_o semine_fw-la which_o by_o fimentation_n fermentation_n and_o coagulation_n in_o loco_fw-la idoneo_fw-la arrive_v in_o its_o appoint_a time_n to_o a_o vegetation_n and_o perhaps_o live_v without_o breath_n or_o breathe_v or_o with_o very_o little_a assistance_n thereof_o until_o nature_n drive_v it_o forth_o into_o the_o open_a air_n where_o after_o it_o have_v once_o take_v breath_n it_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v keep_v alive_a for_o many_o moment_n
without_o the_o requisite_a refreshment_n of_o respiration_n which_o perpetual_o must_v fan_v the_o flame_n of_o life_n for_o maintain_v the_o same_o in_o a_o state_n of_o purity_n vigour_n and_o activity_n and_o thus_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n and_o beast_n appear_v to_o be_v a_o compositum_fw-la of_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o life_n act_v by_o inflame_a spirit_n of_o the_o blood_n the_o whole_a motion_n and_o power_n of_o the_o body_n and_o i●s_a organ_n as_o well_o in_o motion_n local_a as_o in_o the_o sensitive_a rational_a and_o affective_a operation_n and_o power_n of_o the_o person_n so_o as_o these_o two_o principle_n of_o breath_n and_o blood_n material_a and_o unintelligent_a though_o they_o be_v seem_v to_o effect_v and_o produce_v in_o the_o creature_n both_o life_n itself_o and_o all_o the_o power_n and_o faculty_n thereunto_o belong_v and_o this_o sort_n of_o spirit_n in_o composito_n be_v all_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n which_o yet_o i_o be_o able_a to_o perceive_v to_o be_v in_o man_n or_o beast_n and_o this_o cause_v i_o to_o apprehend_v it_o must_v be_v mortal_a and_o that_o as_o it_o be_v procreate_v and_o bear_v with_o the_o body_n so_o it_o must_v cease_v at_o death_n with_o the_o be_v of_o the_o person_n and_o be_v therewith_o raise_v again_o at_o the_o general_n resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a notwithstanding_o the_o evidence_n which_o i_o have_v produce_v for_o the_o maintain_v this_o opinion_n i_o rest_v assure_v my_o opposer_n will_v maintain_v that_o there_o must_v be_v another_o sort_n of_o soul_n or_o spirit_n in_o man_n for_o produce_v and_o manage_v his_o superexcellent_a faculty_n of_o intellect_n and_o memory_n because_o they_o can_v perceive_v or_o understand_v the_o quomodo_n or_o manner_n how_o this_o material_a soul_n compound_v of_o breath_n blood_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o it_o act_v by_o the_o circulation_n thereof_o can_v possible_o produce_v the_o effect_n and_o operation_n last_o specify_v i_o do_v not_o perceive_v that_o they_o very_o much_o boggle_v at_o the_o opinion_n that_o these_o ingredient_n may_v possible_o produce_v life_n motion_n sensitive_a faculty_n and_o affection_n because_o they_o can_v with_o any_o good_a face_n of_o reason_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o by_o such_o a_o material_a compound_v spirit_n of_o life_n the_o brute_n and_o all_o their_o power_n be_v daily_o and_o certain_o enliven_v act_v supply_v and_o support_v and_o i_o think_v they_o be_v not_o well_o able_a to_o deny_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n by_o i_o propound_v be_v the_o causa_fw-la sine_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la of_o intellect_n memory_n and_o whatsoever_o other_o supreme_a faculty_n there_o be_v find_v in_o the_o constitution_n or_o nature_n of_o the_o humane_a person_n and_o therefore_o i_o will_v not_o say_v much_o in_o the_o proof_n thereof_o which_o our_o daily_a experience_n sufficient_o demonstrate_v our_o sense_n of_o see_v often_o prove_v to_o we_o that_o man_n and_o beast_n by_o hang_v strangle_a drown_v or_o by_o other_o suffocation_n or_o stop_n of_o their_o breath_n be_v soon_o deliver_v over_o to_o the_o dominion_n of_o death_n and_o thereby_o the_o word_n of_o david_n be_v verify_v when_o thou_o take_v away_o their_o breath_n they_o die_v and_o therewith_o shall_v be_v finish_v my_o present_a argument_n whence_o i_o go_v on_o to_o inquire_v after_o solomon_n mean_v in_o the_o word_n of_o this_o text_n the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o i_o dare_v not_o and_o therefore_o i_o do_v not_o affirm_v that_o solomon_n intend_v this_o sort_n of_o spirit_n which_o i_o have_v describe_v to_o be_v true_o that_o spirit_n which_o he_o say_v return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o and_o with_o intent_n to_o give_v a_o reasonable_a account_n thereof_o i_o think_v fit_a to_o premise_v that_o there_o be_v two_o other_o sort_n of_o soul_n or_o spirit_n common_o take_v notice_n of_o in_o the_o learned_a world_n the_o first_o of_o which_o and_o the_o most_o take_v notice_n of_o be_v that_o sort_v soul_n which_o be_v often_o speak_v of_o and_o describe_v by_o mr._n w._n and_o his_o party_n and_o which_o they_o say_v be_v a_o entire_a complete_a intelligent_a spirit_n act_v the_o organical_a body_n while_o it_o therein_o remain_v and_o special_o the_o kepheline_n organ_n thereof_o produce_v eminent_o therein_o the_o high_a faculty_n of_o perceive_v understanding_n judgement_n will_n and_o memory_n and_o they_o s●y_v that_o after_o the_o departure_n of_o this_o soul_n from_o the_o person_n who_o thereby_o be_v dissolve_v it_o can_v subsi_v by_o itself_o in_o a_o separate_a state_n and_o therein_o move_v itself_o and_o have_v full_a enjoyment_n of_o the_o forenamed_a power_n of_o reason_v act_v and_o think_v and_o that_o very_a soon_o after_o its_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n it_o go_v to_o god_n or_o before_o his_o tribunal_n to_o receive_v his_o intermediate_n judgement_n upon_o the_o act_v do_v by_o the_o person_n in_o his_o life_n time_n and_o that_o pursuant_n to_o the_o sentence_n therein_o give_v such_o soul_n be_v either_o accept_v into_o heaven_n and_o happiness_n or_o that_o they_o be_v cast_v down_o to_o hell_n to_o be_v there_o make_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a suffering_n and_o that_o they_o have_v sense_n and_o perception_n enough_o to_o take_v a_o full_a taste_n of_o these_o great_a difference_n to_o which_o the_o romish_a church_n annex_v that_o beside_o the_o soul_n that_o go_v to_o these_o two_o place_n there_o be_v other_o soul_n which_o be_v send_v some_o to_o limbus_n paterum_fw-la aut_fw-la puerorum_fw-la other_o to_o paradise_n or_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o other_o of_o which_o they_o think_v there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n into_o the_o scorch_a flame_n of_o a_o purgatorial_n fire_n where_o they_o must_v undergo_v great_a yet_o temporal_a suffering_n for_o expiate_v the_o crime_n of_o their_o dead_a person_n and_o purge_v away_o that_o dross_n which_o they_o have_v contract_v in_o the_o body_n of_o their_o person_n upon_o earth_n the_o second_o sort_n of_o soul_n whereof_o notice_n be_v take_v by_o the_o learned_a be_v suppose_v to_o have_v a_o different_a original_a rise_v from_o a_o opinion_n very_o ancient_a in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n itself_o be_v one_o immense_a live_a creature_n or_o machine_n animate_v or_o act_v by_o one_o universal_a soul_n spirit_n or_o be_v which_o the_o old_a philosopher_n term_v some_o of_o they_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o world_n and_o by_o other_o it_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o nature_n which_o they_o so_o both_o describe_v as_o they_o appear_v to_o intend_v a_o universal_a or_o infinite_a spirit_n from_o whence_o or_o from_o who_o all_o the_o life_n and_o motion_n find_v in_o the_o world_n be_v derive_v some_o of_o those_o learned_a say_v that_o all_o the_o life_n of_o grass_n flower_n and_o plant_n be_v derive_v from_o that_o spirit_n or_o be_v and_o that_o upon_o their_o die_v that_o vegetable_a spirit_n which_o before_o be_v in_o they_o return_v again_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o nature_n from_o whence_o it_o first_o proceed_v other_o go_v not_o so_o deep_a but_o content_v themselves_o to_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o all_o those_o creature_n which_o have_v spontaneous_a motion_n proceed_v from_o this_o soul_n of_o the_o world_n or_o that_o universal_a spirit_n or_o be_v which_o animate_v or_o act_v the_o same_o and_o they_o conceive_v that_o when_o such_o creature_n be_v due_o fit_v for_o the_o receipt_n of_o life_n this_o universal_o know_v spirit_n be_v move_v by_o a_o natural_a congruity_n in_o the_o thing_n to_o emit_v from_o itself_o such_o spark_n and_o particle_n as_o be_v part_n of_o it_o be_v own_o be_v for_o the_o communicate_v and_o give_v such_o a_o spirit_n of_o life_n to_o those_o creature_n as_o their_o nature_n require_v and_o that_o when_o such_o live_a creature_n dye_v those_o spark_n or_o parcel_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n which_o they_o have_v before_o receive_v return_v immediate_o back_o to_o the_o universal_a spirit_n of_o the_o world_n as_o to_o the_o fountain_n from_o whence_o they_o issue_v or_o as_o to_o that_o totum_fw-la of_o which_o themselves_o be_v but_o the_o small_a spark_n or_o particle_n to_o which_o they_o be_v again_o join_v and_o be_v receive_v into_o it_o as_o true_a and_o real_a part_n and_o particle_n of_o the_o same_o this_o apprehension_n have_v be_v of_o a_o long_a continuance_n in_o the_o world_n come_v down_o from_o the_o discourse_n of_o ancient_a philosopher_n to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o divine_a plato_n by_o who_o it_o be_v cultivate_v and_o confirm_v so_o as_o all_o his_o doctrine_n and_o write_n seem_v to_o have_v reference_n thereunto_o and_o taste_v very_o strong_o of_o that_o opinion_n and_o all_o his_o scholar_n be_v much_o addict_v thereunto_o
soul_n a_o power_n of_o think_v which_o be_v thus_o word_v i_o deny_v my_o assent_n thereunto_o but_o have_v he_o say_v that_o a_o man_n feel_v or_o find_v a_o power_n of_o think_v in_o himself_o i_o shall_v have_v easy_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o it_o he_o say_v the_o variety_n of_o thought_n or_o act_n of_o willing_a be_v the_o soul_n motion_n i_o say_v they_o be_v motion_n or_o act_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n effect_v by_o act_v the_o inflame_a spirit_n of_o the_o blood_n work_v in_o the_o kepheline_n organ_n in_o the_o which_o the_o great_a artificer_n god_n frame_v and_o place_v they_o and_o to_o that_o purpose_n give_v they_o sufficient_a power_n to_o perform_v such_o action_n when_o he_o create_v the_o fabric_n of_o the_o humane_a body_n and_o breathe_v into_o its_o nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n whereby_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o humour_n become_v inflame_v for_o act_v in_o a_o body_n to_o such_o purpose_n and_o by_o such_o a_o excellent_a and_o artificial_a composition_n always_o to_o be_v continue_v by_o respiration_n god_n excellent_a wisdom_n and_o power_n do_v in_o the_o beginning_n produce_v these_o working_n among_o such_o kepheline_n organ_n and_o give_v they_o in_o this_o compositum_fw-la power_n to_o produce_v perception_n fantasy_n judgement_n will_n memory_n affection_n local_a motion_n and_o all_o other_o power_n or_o faculty_n of_o the_o humane_a mind_n or_o person_n whatsoever_o i_o know_v that_o upon_o read_v of_o this_o discourse_n mr._n w._n and_o his_o party_n will_v all_o cry_v out_o how_o can_v these_o thing_n be_v that_o unintelligent_a senseless_a material_n work_v among_o or_o together_o with_o one_o another_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o produce_v life_n sense_n affection_n perception_n intellect_n memory_n in_o the_o person_n demand_v of_o i_o on_o account_n or_o declaration_n how_o such_o thing_n can_v with_o any_o probability_n be_v effect_v by_o the_o work_n together_o of_o such_o material_n and_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o quomodo_n of_o such_o a_o operation_n be_v a_o speculation_n too_o sublime_a and_o curious_a for_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n to_o compass_v or_o obtain_v the_o artifice_n of_o the_o humane_a machine_n can_v be_v thorough_o penetrate_v or_o discover_v by_o the_o sublimest_n wit_n among_o man_n witness_v the_o doubt_n both_o of_o solomon_n and_o aristotle_n discover_v in_o their_o discourse_n upon_o the_o point_n now_o in_o question_n that_o god_n have_v wisdom_n and_o skill_n sufficient_a to_o produce_v intelligence_n by_o mean_n of_o material_a operation_n seem_v true_a and_o something_o clear_a to_o my_o understanding_n and_o but_o few_o of_o our_o opposer_n do_v deny_v somewhat_o a_o like_a artifice_n and_o operation_n in_o the_o brutal_a nature_n they_o seem_v ready_a to_o agree_v that_o god_n by_o his_o wisdom_n and_o skill_n use_v in_o the_o fabrication_n of_o the_o brute_n have_v in_o the_o beginning_n produce_v and_o do_v still_o produce_v life_n motion_n sensation_n affection_n inward_a perception_n phantafie_n choice_n and_o memory_n by_o the_o medium_fw-la before_o describe_v viz._n the_o move_a and_o act_v of_o such_o spirit_n of_o the_o blood_n in_o the_o kephaline_n and_o other_o organical_a part_n of_o their_o body_n without_o such_o a_o entire_a intelligent_a spirit_n as_o mr._n w._n will_v needs_o suppose_v to_o be_v in_o man._n daily_a experience_n convince_v we_o that_o the_o life_n motion_n sensation_n and_o affection_n of_o the_o brute_n be_v as_o true_a strong_a vigorous_a and_o active_a as_o they_o be_v in_o man_n although_o their_o inward_a perception_n phantasie_n choice_n and_o memory_n fall_v short_a of_o the_o like_a faculty_n in_o man_n by_o divers_a degree_n or_o gradation_n which_o i_o think_v may_v very_o probable_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o difference_n in_o their_o kephaline_n organ_n which_o be_v frame_v more_o apt_o for_o such_o purpose_n in_o man_n than_o in_o beast_n whence_o we_o may_v suppose_v the_o difference_n between_o they_o in_o this_o point_n rise_v not_o so_o much_o from_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o move_v and_o act_v they_o as_o from_o the_o difference_n and_o degree_n of_o perfection_n among_o their_o organ_n which_o be_v so_o to_o be_v act_v for_o illustration_n of_o which_o position_n we_o may_v far_o consider_v the_o fabric_n of_o their_o body_n and_o thereupon_o we_o must_v find_v that_o humane_a body_n have_v advantage_n above_o the_o brutal_a in_o two_o particular_a member_n viz._n their_o hand_n and_o tongue_n of_o which_o member_n and_o their_o activity_n if_o humane_a body_n be_v deprive_v they_o will_v be_v much_o more_o like_o the_o beast_n that_o perish_v than_o now_o they_o be_v and_o yet_o man_n do_v not_o use_v to_o argue_v from_o these_o bodily_a advantage_n that_o their_o flesh_n blood_n bones_o or_o breath_n have_v a_o different_a nature_n or_o constitution_n from_o those_o of_o beast_n but_o people_n be_v general_o content_a to_o say_v with_o solomon_n that_o the_o corporeal_a constitution_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n be_v of_o a_o similar_v nature_n and_o constitution_n one_o of_o they_o with_o the_o other_o whence_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o probable_a that_o although_o the_o spirit_n act_n with_o great_a perfection_n the_o head_n and_o brain_n of_o man_n than_o they_o do_v among_o beast_n yet_o that_o hinder_v not_o but_o that_o they_o may_v all_o be_v act_v by_o spirit_n of_o a_o similar_v nature_n one_o of_o they_o to_o another_o and_o thus_o argue_v i_o pretend_v to_o have_v show_v that_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v more_o likely_a to_o be_v act_v by_o the_o inflame_v spirit_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o brain_n than_o by_o a_o intelligent_a spirit_n create_v by_o god_n for_o that_o purpose_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v still_o apparent_o true_a that_o man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o mode_n or_o manner_n of_o the_o production_n of_o such_o power_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n by_o the_o motion_n or_o act_n of_o those_o spirit_n in_o his_o brain_n that_o i_o conclude_v to_o be_v the_o arcanum_n opificis_fw-la and_o that_o none_o other_o can_v tell_v or_o find_v out_o how_o the_o same_o be_v perform_v and_o hereupon_o i_o incline_v to_o rebut_n upon_o my_o opposer_n with_o their_o own_o argument_n and_o to_o demand_v of_o they_o how_o or_o by_o what_o mean_n or_o after_o what_o manner_n their_o intelligent_a soul_n can_v or_o do_v move_v and_o act_n the_o body_n and_o the_o several_a organ_n and_o member_n thereof_o have_v find_v they_o all_o hitherto_o confess_v that_o themselves_o do_v not_o know_v and_o therefore_o can_v declare_v to_o other_o the_o certain_a or_o likely_a mode_n or_o manner_n of_o that_o performance_n and_o for_o their_o soul_n be_v tota_n in_o toto_fw-la &_o tota_fw-la in_o qualibet_fw-la parte_fw-la i_o pass_v it_o for_o a_o aenigma_fw-la or_o riddle_n conceive_v there_o be_v no_o apparent_a sense_n in_o that_o expression_n nor_o any_o clear_a truth_n to_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o it_o p._n 34._o mr._n w._n say_v that_o he_o the_o soul_n can_v look_v upon_o one_o thing_n and_o think_v upon_o another_o of_o a_o quite_o different_a nature_n and_o that_o she_o can_v be_v in_o the_o noise_n of_o a_o army_n and_o yet_o in_o a_o profound_a and_o bless_a peace_n she_o can_v cool_v the_o blood_n in_o its_o great_a fervour_n of_o lust_n p._n 35._o so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a she_o have_v a_o absolute_a empire_n over_o the_o body_n and_o all_o its_o part_n and_o be_v not_o constrain_v in_o her_o motion_n by_o they_o but_o they_o be_v all_o at_o her_o command_n and_o move_v by_o her_o direction_n hereunto_o i_o reply_v that_o so_o much_o as_o be_v true_a of_o what_o he_o say_v the_o soul_n can_v do_v may_v be_v most_o proper_o predicate_v of_o the_o man_n and_o not_o of_o the_o soul_n which_o alone_o can_v do_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o speak_v of_o next_o for_o the_o absolute_a monarchical_a power_n which_o he_o ascribe_v to_o the_o soul_n over_o the_o person_n i_o think_v he_o be_v in_o a_o error_n about_o it_o rom._n 7.15_o that_o which_o i_o do_v i_o allow_v not_o for_o what_o i_o will_v that_o do_v i_o not_o but_o what_o i_o hate_v that_o do_v i._o ver._n 17._o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o i_o that_o do_v it_o but_o sin_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o ver._n 18._o to_o will_n be_v present_a with_o i_o but_o how_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a i_o find_v not_o for_o the_o good_a i_o will_v i_o do_v not_o but_o the_o evil_n which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o i_o do_v and_o it_o be_v no_o more_o i_o that_o do_v it_o but_o sin_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o i_o delight_v in_o he_o law_n of_o god_n after_o the_o inward_a man_n but_o i_o see_v another_o law_n in_o my_o member_n war_a against_o the_o law_n of_o my_o mind_n
he_o quote_v again_o annotation_n of_o the_o assembly_n of_o divine_n in_o the_o rump-parliament_n time_n for_o his_o purpose_n without_o tell_v we_o what_o they_o say_v upon_o it_o and_o for_o want_v of_o their_o annotation_n i_o know_v not_o what_o they_o say_v of_o it_o and_o if_o i_o do_v i_o shall_v not_o be_v much_o move_v by_o their_o authority_n except_o they_o give_v better_a reason_n for_o their_o opinion_n than_o mr._n w._n have_v yet_o do_v p._n 49._o mr._n w._n argue_v say_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n or_o the_o spirit_n or_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n in_o man_n live_v in_o and_o with_o the_o body_n and_o yet_o die_v not_o with_o the_o body_n and_o this_o he_o say_v needs_o proof_n and_o so_o do_v i_o say_v too_o and_o he_o offer_v to_o prove_v it_o by_o say_v that_o who_o life_n depend_v not_o on_o the_o body_n must_v not_o die_v when_o the_o body_n die_v but_o the_o soul_n life_n depend_v not_o on_o the_o body_n therefore_o it_o must_v need_v not_o die_v when_o the_o body_n die_v and_o the_o reason_n why_o he_o say_v the_o soul_n life_n depend_v not_o upon_o the_o body_n be_v because_o god_n make_v it_o a_o spirit_n of_o life_n to_o give_v life_n to_o the_o body_n and_o not_o to_o receive_v any_o life_n from_o it_o i_o answer_v if_o this_o argue_n be_v not_o that_o which_o man_n call_v petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la or_o beg_v the_o question_n i_o know_v not_o what_o be_v we_o be_v now_o dispute_v whether_o adam_n have_v a_o intelligent_a soul_n create_v for_o he_o at_o first_o or_o not_o and_o whether_o such_o a_o soul_n have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n and_o in_o both_o these_o point_n he_o maintain_v the_o affirmative_a and_o pretend_v to_o prove_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n by_o its_o be_v a_o create_v intelligent_a spirit_n make_v by_o god_n for_o adam_n at_o the_o first_o and_o thus_o prove_v one_o controvert_v point_n by_o another_o as_o high_o controvert_v as_o itself_o and_o which_o i_o conceive_v his_o offer_n in_o this_o argument_n do_v very_o weak_o and_o insufficient_o prove_v p._n 50._o he_o observe_v out_o of_o moses_n text_n that_o it_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o body_n life_n before_o god_n breathe_v into_o he_o a_o spirit_n or_o soul_n of_o life_n as_o mr._n w._n will_v have_v it_o though_o the_o word_n of_o our_o bible_n express_o call_v it_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o i_o so_o far_o agree_v that_o adam_n body_n have_v not_o life_n till_o this_o breath_n of_o life_n or_o this_o breath_n cause_v life_n be_v breathe_v into_o it_o but_o that_o from_o thence_o he_o begin_v to_o live_v and_o become_v a_o live_a person_n thus_o far_o we_o be_v at_o agreement_n his_o next_o two_o or_o three_o page_n be_v spend_v in_o proof_n of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n draw_v from_o the_o two_o beforementioned_a topic_n viz._n that_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o intelligent_a spirit_n and_o be_v new_o create_v by_o god_n for_o adam_n and_o next_o that_o it_o be_v such_o a_o spirit_n as_o can_v subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n and_o thereupon_o i_o say_v that_o if_o he_o or_o any_o that_o be_v of_o his_o opinion_n can_v convince_v with_o some_o clearness_n that_o god_n create_v such_o a_o intelligent_a soul_n for_o adam_n as_o can_v subsist_v act_n and_o suffer_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n he_o shall_v need_v to_o make_v no_o further_o proof_n to_o i_o of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n because_o if_o the_o former_a be_v true_a i_o have_v no_o inclination_n or_o intention_n to_o dispute_v the_o late_a and_o therefore_o i_o pass_v over_o what_o he_o say_v to_o that_o purpose_n and_o shut_v up_o my_o observation_n upon_o this_o argument_n with_o the_o forementioned_a conclusion_n that_o mr._n w.'s_n argument_n therein_o produce_v to_o prove_v the_o creation_n of_o a_o intelligent_a soul_n or_o spirit_n for_o adam_n at_o the_o first_o be_v infirm_a invalid_a and_o little_a convicning_n to_o such_o understanding_n as_o i_o have_v be_v able_a to_o employ_v in_o the_o perusal_n of_o they_o second_o argument_n page_n 54._o mr._n w._n quote_v the_o history_n of_o saul_n go_v to_o the_o witch_n of_o endor_n relate_v the_o word_n speak_v to_o she_o by_o he_o i_o pray_v thou_o divine_a to_o i_o by_o the_o familiar_a spirit_n and_o bring_v i_o he_o up_o who_o i_o shall_v name_v unto_o thou_o and_o she_o desire_v to_o know_v who_o that_o he_o be_v which_o she_o shall_v bring_v up_o saul_n tell_v she_o it_o be_v samuel_n upon_o this_o text_n mr._n w._n thus_o comment_n that_o saul_n by_o this_o demand_n must_v need_v intend_v the_o bring_v up_o of_o samuel_n soul_n to_o discourse_n with_o he_o and_o from_o thence_o collect_v that_o the_o jew_n of_o that_o age_n hold_v the_o same_o opinion_n which_o he_o now_o maintain_v concern_v the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n to_o which_o i_o reply_v that_o this_o collection_n seem_v in_o a_o great_a part_n to_o arise_v from_o his_o own_o inclination_n to_o have_v it_o so_o and_o his_o imagination_n thence_o arise_v that_o it_o be_v so_o for_o if_o i_o be_v employ_v to_o collect_v from_o this_o history_n i_o shall_v conceive_v that_o saul_n head_n be_v other_o way_n employ_v at_o that_o time_n than_o to_o consider_v what_o that_o be_v which_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v bring_v up_o whether_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o spirit_n a_o body_n or_o a_o person_n or_o a_o appear-dance_n only_o and_o not_o a_o real_a be_v i_o conceive_v his_o head_n be_v not_o trouble_v about_o such_o speculation_n but_o his_o whole_a design_n be_v by_o the_o witch_n mean_n to_o get_v knowledge_n what_o the_o success_n of_o his_o affair_n shall_v be_v in_o a_o time_n when_o he_o be_v great_o distress_v it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o divers_a age_n to_o foretell_v action_n past_a and_o future_a success_n by_o raise_v up_o and_o consult_v with_o the_o dead_a and_o from_o this_o practice_n they_o have_v among_o other_o title_n the_o name_n of_o necromancer_n bestow_v upon_o they_o this_o practice_n of_o magician_n and_o witch_n have_v be_v long_o take_v notice_n of_o in_o the_o world_n and_o it_o seem_v by_o saul_n demand_v make_v to_o the_o woman_n he_o have_v hear_v or_o otherwise_o know_v something_o thereof_o and_o desire_v by_o the_o witch_n mean_v thus_o to_o consult_v the_o dead_a and_o particular_o samuel_n as_o the_o most_o know_v among_o they_o and_o from_o such_o a_o collection_n i_o conceive_v it_o do_v not_o appear_v what_o saul_n or_o the_o jew_n of_o his_o time_n think_v concern_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n we_o meet_v with_o divers_a relation_n of_o appearance_n make_v and_o contrive_v by_o the_o art_n of_o magician_n of_o late_a time_n but_o never_o yet_o hear_v of_o raise_v a_o argument_n from_o thence_o to_o prove_v the_o estate_n or_o condition_n of_o depart_a soul_n nor_o do_v i_o conceive_v this_o argument_n have_v any_o strength_n in_o it_o to_o that_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o i_o pass_v over_o mr._n w.'s_n other_o expression_n use_v in_o this_o argument_n with_o this_o further_a observation_n that_o he_o raise_v the_o argument_n out_o of_o this_o history_n with_o intent_n to_o reach_v as_o high_a a_o time_n as_o be_v possible_a for_o produce_v any_o sort_n of_o evidence_n or_o raise_v any_o manner_n of_o argument_n which_o may_v be_v bring_v or_o draw_v to_o touch_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n and_o this_o as_o the_o high_a pitch_n of_o time_n that_o he_o can_v reach_v he_o choose_v to_o make_v use_n of_o for_o that_o purpose_n fulfil_v therein_o the_o old_a proyerb_n willing_a person_n will_v rather_o play_v a●_n small_a game_n then_o sit_v out_o the_o three_o argument_n page_n 57_o he_o say_v he_o be_v strike_v with_o wonder_n to_o hear_v man_n assert_v that_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o a_o man_n die_v together_o and_o be_v both_o bury_v in_o one_o grave_a my_o opinion_n be_v somewhat_o otherwise_o word_v express_v i_o think_v it_o probable_a that_o when_o respiration_n fail_v and_o the_o person_n die_v the_o flame_n of_o life_n be_v extinguish_v which_o do_v not_o intend_v a_o be_v bury_v or_o a_o go_v any_o whether_o not_o find_v cause_n to_o agree_v with_o solomon_n expression_n of_o go_v upward_o or_o downward_o and_o if_o mr._n w._n do_v real_o wonder_v at_o this_o conception_n i_o make_v no_o argument_n of_o it_o and_o shall_v only_o thereunto_o answer_v i_o can_v help_v it_o p._n 58._o the_o soul_n or_o breath_n of_o man_n be_v breathe_v into_o adam_n by_o a_o act_n of_o creation_n this_o i_o have_v all_o along_o deny_v and_o continue_v to_o do_v so_o because_o i_o think_v mr._n w._n have_v hereto_o
fail_v in_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o he_o hope_v his_o adversary_n will_v not_o be_v such_o blasphemer_n as_o to_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o solomon_n word_n the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o concern_v which_o word_n i_o have_v before_o full_o declare_v my_o conception_n and_o have_v no_o design_n to_o repeat_v they_o again_o here_o further_o he_o quote_v again_o eccl._n 3._o as_o if_o solomon_n there_o say_v that_o when_o man_n die_v his_o body_n go_v one_o way_n and_o his_o spirit_n another_o and_o whether_o he_o quote_v this_o text_n true_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o judgement_n then_o mr._n w._n put_v a_o objection_n against_o himself_o suppose_v some_o may_v say_v if_o all_o soul_n return_v to_o god_n that_o give_v they_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o wicked_a do_v so_o too_o and_o he_o grant_v that_o so_o they_o do_v and_o for_o solution_n of_o this_o objection_n he_o say_v that_o though_o god_n be_v in_o his_o high_a heaven_n and_o keep_v his_o session_n there_o yet_o there_o be_v some_o other_o part_n of_o the_o heaven_n where_o he_o keep_v a_o particular_a session_n to_o which_o evil_a spirit_n may_v approach_v as_o they_o do_v in_o micaiah_n vision_n where_o god_n may_v pass_v sentence_n upon_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o wicked_a without_o bring_v they_o into_o heaven_n and_o he_o think_v god_n have_v a_o glorious_a presence_n in_o the_o low_a heaven_n with_o his_o angel_n and_o that_o there_o he_o do_v transact_v many_o affair_n relate_v to_o the_o government_n of_o this_o world_n and_o quote_v for_o this_o the_o devil_n appearance_n in_o the_o case_n of_o job_n and_o say_v if_o devil_n may_v appear_v before_o god_n so_o may_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o wicked_a do_v too_o in_o answer_v i_o declare_v to_o agree_v with_o his_o last_o expression_n that_o if_o there_o be_v separate_a soul_n of_o wicked_a man_n subsist_v by_o themselves_o they_o may_v appear_v before_o god_n as_o he_o quote_v text_n testify_v devil_n have_v do_v but_o i_o demand_v as_o clear_a text_n and_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o appear_v of_o wicked_a soul_n before_o god_n as_o be_v quote_v for_o the_o appear_v of_o devil_n before_o he_o but_o he_o bring_v not_o one_o text_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o say_v truth_n concern_v the_o appear_v of_o wicked_a soul_n before_o god_n and_o i_o confide_v that_o no_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n can_v be_v bring_v which_o give_v a_o assertory_n testimony_n of_o that_o fact_n or_o say_v there_o be_v ever_o such_o a_o thing_n do_v in_o the_o world_n and_o for_o what_o he_o say_v of_o god_n keep_v his_o session_n of_o judgement_n sometime_o in_o heaven_n and_o sometime_o in_o other_o particular_a part_n of_o heaven_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o demand_v proof_n thereof_o from_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o he_o bring_v not_o one_o to_o this_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o i_o think_v it_o may_v be_v conclude_v that_o these_o several_a session_n of_o god_n for_o judgement_n be_v but_o a_o device_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n which_o have_v no_o real_a truth_n in_o it_o and_o thus_o by_o man_n device_n they_o strive_v to_o heal_v cover_n and_o confirm_v their_o erroneous_a opinion_n which_o i_o look_v upon_o as_o a_o great_a fault_n in_o a_o good_a man_n but_o notwithstanding_o those_o humane_a invention_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o conclude_v that_o if_o the_o good_a soul_n go_v to_o god_n for_o judgement_n in_o heaven_n that_o bad_a soul_n do_v also_o somewhat_o evident_o do_v the_o like_a solomon_n say_v the_o soul_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o the_o soul_n return_v be_v word_n that_o intend_v indefinite_o and_o seem_v therefore_o equivalent_a to_o a_o universal_a and_o signify_v as_o much_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v all_o soul_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v they_o and_o this_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n our_o author_n have_v late_o grant_v whence_o i_o conclude_v that_o as_o god_n say_v all_o soul_n be_v my_o which_o i_o think_v intend_v person_n so_o all_o soul_n be_v intend_v to_o return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v they_o as_o well_o and_o as_o much_o the_o bad_a as_o the_o good_a for_o any_o thing_n that_o i_o can_v perceive_v either_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n or_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v true_a in_o our_o author_n discourse_n of_o it_o p._n 60._o he_o put_v a_o second_o objection_n against_o this_o opinion_n which_o i_o think_v he_o do_v set_v up_o as_o a_o man_n of_o straw_n that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o batter_a of_o it_o down_o again_o he_o pretend_v some_o say_v that_o he_o have_v indeed_o prove_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o be_v separate_v at_o death_n and_o that_o one_o of_o they_o go_v to_o one_o place_n and_o the_o other_o of_o they_o go_v to_o the_o other_o place_n but_o that_o he_o have_v not_o yet_o prove_v the_o soul_n to_o live_v in_o that_o state_n of_o separation_n hereupon_o i_o observe_v that_o after_o he_o have_v say_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v separate_v at_o death_n he_o add_v that_o they_o go_v to_o two_o different_a place_n which_o say_v i_o think_v the_o text_n do_v not_o warrant_n for_o it_o do_v not_o say_v that_o either_o of_o they_o go_v to_o any_o place_n and_o first_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a a_o dead_a body_n can_v go_v any_o whither_o the_o text_n say_v it_o return_v to_o the_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v and_o of_o which_o before_o it_o receive_v life_n it_o be_v a_o part_n so_o for_o the_o spirit_n the_o text_n say_v it_o return_v not_o go_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o i_o have_v before_o offer_v a_o apprehension_n that_o solomon_n may_v intend_v this_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n in_o a_o natural_a and_o easy_a manner_n as_o a_o part_n do_v to_o its_o totum_fw-la and_o the_o parcel_n of_o air_n or_o water_n return_v to_o and_o incorporate_v with_o their_o element_n and_o that_o as_o the_o body_n return_v to_o the_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v and_o as_o a_o part_n do_v to_o its_o totum_fw-la so_o the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n from_o who_o it_o come_v and_o of_o which_o i_o suppose_v solomon_n may_v think_v it_o to_o have_v be_v a_o part_n but_o i_o grant_v that_o if_o the_o soul_n in_o our_o author_n sense_n do_v go_v to_o god_n after_o death_n than_o the_o objection_n which_o say_v he_o do_v not_o prove_v it_o alive_a in_o a_o separate_a state_n be_v vain_a and_o frivolous_a and_o may_v easy_o be_v overthrow_v without_o put_v our_o author_n to_o the_o trouble_v of_o defend_v his_o opinion_n against_o it_o in_o the_o close_a of_o this_o argument_n mr._n w._n ask_v what_o have_v the_o live_a god_n to_o do_v with_o dead_a spirit_n and_o i_o say_v so_o too_o and_o therefore_o grant_v that_o if_o the_o intelligent_a separate_a spirit_n of_o a_o man_n be_v dead_a it_o can_v with_o no_o propriety_n or_o truth_n be_v say_v to_o return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o p._n 61._o mr._n w._n say_v so_o i_o shut_v up_o this_o three_o argument_n and_o with_o it_o my_o proof_n from_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o concern_v these_o threee_v argument_n i_o say_v the_o first_o be_v measurable_o confute_v the_o second_o be_v disregard_v and_o the_o three_o be_v otherways_o expound_v and_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o oppose_v mr._n w_n pretension_n thereupon_o the_o four_o argument_n pag._n 61._o mr._n w._n quote_v here_o that_o text_n of_o scripture_n whereby_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n be_v principal_o support_v and_o upon_o which_o it_o be_v with_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o clearness_n ground_v and_o which_o arise_v near_o unto_o a_o assertion_n that_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o and_o i_o think_v mr._n w._n do_v from_o thence_o right_o argue_v that_o if_o the_o soul_n can_v be_v kill_v by_o kill_v the_o body_n or_o person_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o reasonable_a inference_n draw_v from_o this_o text_n to_o argue_v that_o the_o soul_n must_v needs_o have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o its_o own_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n and_o further_a mr._n w._n observe_v well_o the_o reason_n why_o our_o lord_n deliver_v this_o doctrine_n to_o his_o disciple_n viz._n to_o encourage_v they_o against_o the_o fear_n of_o such_o persecution_n as_o be_v likely_a to_o fall_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o their_o great_a duty_n the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n encourage_v they_o not_o to_o sear_v what_o harm_v man_n can_v do_v unto_o they_o upon_o that_o account_n because_o man_n can_v only_o kill_v the_o body_n intend_v the_o person_n but_o be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n for_o lay_v any_o other_o sort_n of_o real_a punishment_n upon_o man_n after_o their_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n p._n 62._o mr._n w._n produce_v a_o argument_n which_o i_o think_v
he_o right_o term_v a_o absurd_a one_o for_o he_o pretend_v there_o be_v some_o that_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n may_v die_v when_o the_o body_n die_v though_o it_o be_v not_o slay_v when_o the_o body_n be_v kill_v to_o this_o i_o say_v i_o be_o none_o of_o those_o who_o so_o argue_v nor_o do_v i_o ever_o yet_o meet_v with_o a_o write_n or_o person_n that_o do_v so_o next_o he_o produce_v another_o objection_n of_o some_o who_o he_o suppose_v may_v say_v that_o the_o kill_n of_o the_o soul_n here_o may_v intend_v that_o they_o can_v kill_v it_o for_o ever_o all_o i_o can_v say_v to_o this_o be_v that_o if_o any_o man_n or_o man_n have_v so_o argue_v they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o of_o my_o mind_n who_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o make_v or_o offer_v any_o such_o argument_n p._n 63._o mr._n w._n set_v down_o a_o objection_n offer_v against_o the_o text_n of_o st._n matthew_n in_o the_o word_n be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n from_o luke_n 12.4_o be_v not_o afraid_a of_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o body_n and_o after_o that_o have_v no_o more_o that_o they_o can_v do_v he_o say_v he_o have_v know_v some_o very_o confident_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o force_n in_o st._n matthew_n text_n because_o that_o of_o st._n luke_n deliver_v the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o word_n from_o which_o no_o clear_a argument_n can_v be_v deduce_v for_o the_o soul_n be_v separate_a subsistence_n i_o say_v i_o do_v not_o affirm_v in_o that_o manner_n viz._n that_o there_o be_v no_o prove_v force_n in_o st._n matthew_n text_n because_o st._n luke_n differ_v from_o he_o in_o relate_v the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n doctrine_n but_o yet_o i_o own_v myself_o to_o think_v that_o from_o the_o manner_n of_o wording_n this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o these_o two_o text_n a_o strong_a objection_n may_v be_v raise_v against_o the_o absolute_a authority_n of_o st._n matthew_n word_n in_o this_o point_n upon_o the_o consideration_n and_o compare_v these_o two_o text_n one_o with_o the_o other_o the_o only_a variance_n between_o they_o be_v in_o the_o word_n of_o st._n matthew_n be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n compare_v with_o those_o of_o st._n luke_n have_v no_o more_o that_o they_o can_v do_v for_o that_o in_o the_o follow_a word_n where_o matthew_n say_v fear_v he_o who_o be_v able_a to_o destroy_v both_o soul_n and_o body_n in_o hell_n and_o those_o which_o luke_n mention_n fear_v he_o who_o after_o he_o have_v kill_v have_v power_n to_o east_n into_o hell_n i_o conceive_v the_o difference_n to_o be_v small_a or_o none_o at_o all_o they_o both_o begin_v our_o lord_n doctrine_n in_o the_o same_o word_n fear_v not_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o body_n where_o they_o both_o speak_v figurative_o and_o i_o therefore_o believe_v our_o lord_n himself_o do_v so_o but_o i_o say_v the_o body_n in_o this_o place_n must_v needs_o intend_v the_o person_n or_o the_o compositum_fw-la of_o soul_n and_o body_n together_o for_o that_o our_o sense_n and_o reason_n sufficient_o assure_v we_o that_o what_o be_v dead_a can_v be_v kill_v but_o the_o body_n without_o the_o soul_n or_o spirit_n of_o life_n be_v dead_a and_o therefore_o the_o body_n take_v single_o or_o not_o act_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n be_v a_o dead_a body_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v kill_v whence_o i_o infer_v that_o when_o our_o evangelist_n speak_v of_o kill_v the_o body_n they_o must_v certain_o intend_v the_o same_o as_o if_o they_o have_v say_v can_v kill_v the_o person_n and_o hence_o i_o collect_v that_o when_o st._n matthew_n speak_v of_o cast_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n into_o hell_n he_o intend_v cast_v the_o compositum_fw-la of_o they_o both_o or_o the_o person_n into_o hell_n st._n luke_n word_n it_o thus_o who_o after_o he_o have_v kill_v have_v power_n to_o cast_v into_o hell_n i_o think_v this_o intend_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v have_v power_n to_o cast_v the_o person_n into_o hell_n so_o as_o it_o seem_v the_o sense_n of_o both_o our_o evangelist_n be_v the_o same_o both_o in_o the_o premise_n and_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o the_o variance_n between_o they_o lies_z as_o before_o have_v be_v say_v in_o the_o word_n be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n of_o st._n matthew_n and_o the_o word_n have_v no_o more_o that_o they_o can_v do_v of_o st._n luke_n if_o we_o shall_v consider_v the_o proper_a intent_n of_o both_o these_o text_n we_o must_v find_v it_o to_o be_v as_o mr._n w._n say_v the_o encourage_n of_o our_o lord_n disciple_n not_o to_o fear_v the_o persecution_n of_o man_n for_o the_o do_v of_o their_o duty_n but_o rather_o to_o fear_n god_n who_o can_v punish_v and_o reward_v after_o death_n as_o well_o as_o in_o this_o life_n and_o the_o text_n of_o both_o our_o evangelist_n agree_v punctual_o to_o that_o intent_n in_o deliver_v word_n of_o the_o same_o importance_n and_o to_o the_o same_o intent_n and_o purpose_n but_o then_o if_o mr._n w._n or_o any_o other_o person_n will_v draw_v out_o of_o they_o proof_n of_o any_o other_o collateral_a thing_n which_o be_v not_o proper_o within_o the_o intent_n of_o our_o lord_n doctrine_n i_o conceive_v they_o speak_v and_o may_v intend_v different_o concern_v that_o collateral_a point_n which_o man_n may_v design_n to_o prove_v by_o they_o it_o seem_v somewhat_o clear_a to_o my_o understanding_n st._n matthew_n word_n prove_v his_o opinion_n to_o be_v that_o humane_a soul_n have_v a_o life_n and_o subsistence_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n and_o i_o conceive_v that_o in_o his_o text_n he_o word_v our_o lord_n doctrine_n according_a to_o his_o own_o opinion_n of_o the_o thing_n we_o find_v that_o st._n luke_n have_v word_v it_o in_o a_o different_a and_o varient_fw-la manner_n so_o express_v our_o lord_n doctrine_n as_o that_o he_o give_v no_o ground_n for_o prove_v the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n from_o his_o text_n which_o in_o the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o it_o do_v not_o name_v the_o soul_n and_o therefore_o upon_o this_o difference_n i_o think_v it_o needful_a to_o inquire_v or_o demand_v what_o be_v the_o very_a precise_a word_n wherein_o our_o lord_n deliver_v this_o doctrine_n if_o st._n matthew_n have_v right_o word_v this_o doctrine_n than_o it_o be_v a_o strong_a proof_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n the_o most_o substantial_a and_o near_a to_o a_o affirmative_a of_o any_o that_o the_o bible_n afford_v we_o but_o if_o st._n luke_n have_v right_o word_v our_o lord_n doctrine_n than_o be_v there_o in_o that_o doctrine_n no_o proof_n at_o all_o of_o a_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n nor_o any_o thing_n say_v in_o it_o whereby_o that_o opinion_n can_v be_v maintain_v i_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o determine_v any_o thing_n concern_v this_o point_n but_o be_o ready_a to_o argue_v that_o there_o lie_v a_o probability_n for_o st._n luke_n text_n against_o that_o of_o st._n matthew_n the_o point_n in_o question_n concern_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n be_v as_o be_v say_v collateral_a to_o the_o intent_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o this_o doctrine_n who_o it_o seem_v do_v not_o here_o mean_a to_o teach_v any_o thing_n which_o may_v direct_v man_n judgement_n in_o that_o collateral_a point_n which_o remain_v utter_o unmentioned_a in_o the_o text_n of_o st._n luke_n this_o move_v i_o to_o apprehend_v that_o the_o put_v it_o into_o st._n matthew_n text_n grow_v from_o his_o own_o opinion_n of_o the_o thing_n rather_o than_o from_o the_o word_n which_o our_o lord_n then_o deliver_v the_o intent_n of_o our_o lord_n seem_v plain_a in_o both_o those_o text_n and_o therein_o what_o have_v be_v say_v seem_v true_a they_o be_v at_o a_o perfect_a agreement_n between_o themselves_o and_o we_o find_v no_o intention_n of_o meaning_n in_o our_o lord_n to_o speak_v or_o teach_v any_o thing_n about_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n and_o therefore_o i_o surmise_v it_o come_v into_o st._n mathew_n text_n by_o accident_n and_o spring_v rather_o from_o his_o own_o opinion_n than_o from_o our_o lord_n doctrine_n or_o the_o word_n and_o expression_n thereof_o second_o i_o say_v that_o st._n matthew_n be_v by_o profession_n and_o practice_n a_o publican_n a_o trade_n which_o no_o man_n of_o quality_n or_o learning_n among_o the_o jew_n of_o that_o time_n will_v endure_v to_o practice_n whence_o matthew_n might_n more_o easy_o fall_v into_o the_o opinion_n appear_v in_o his_o text._n that_o soul_n do_v live_v and_o subsist_v after_o the_o departure_n and_o death_n of_o the_o person_n but_o of_o st._n luke_n we_o read_v that_o he_o be_v a_o learned_a man_n and_o a_o physician_n and_o paul_n from_o who_o mouth_n he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v
they_o when_o they_o have_v live_v under_o the_o discipline_n of_o earthly_a reward_n and_o punishment_n than_o they_o have_v in_o succeed_a and_o late_a age_n when_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n begin_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o spread_v among_o they_o and_o therefore_o it_o seem_v there_o be_v not_o that_o need_n of_o his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n as_o he_o by_o this_o discourse_n pretend_v to_o make_v man_n believe_v mr._n w_n second_o chain_n of_o absurdity_n p._n 128._o he_o say_v his_o opposer_n pretend_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n or_o his_o soul_n to_o be_v but_o a_o fine_a temperament_n of_o moisture_n air_n and_o fire_n very_o near_o of_o kin_n and_o suitable_a to_o the_o temperament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v very_o consistent_a with_o their_o principle_n and_o i_o agree_v that_o what_o he_o say_v be_v true_a in_o this_o point_n this_o mr._n w._n oppose_v by_o say_v first_o if_o thing_n be_v so_o than_o adam_n soul_n may_v have_v be_v create_v of_o the_o dust_n as_o well_o as_o his_o body_n i_o reply_v not_o so_o but_o there_o be_v require_v moisture_n air_n and_o fire_n to_o suppie_n and_o actuate_v that_o dust_n of_o which_o his_o body_n be_v frame_v which_o bring_v the_o steam_n of_o life_n in_o the_o body_n to_o such_o a_o ripeness_n and_o pullulation_n as_o by_o the_o breathe_a a_o breath_n of_o life_n into_o he_o become_v instant_o inflame_v and_o by_o respiration_n must_v every_o moment_n be_v fan_v by_o that_o breath_n which_o continue_v in_o man_n blood_n and_o humour_n and_o the_o spirit_n thereof_o that_o flame_n and_o glow_a who_o total_a extinguishment_n be_v the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n and_o this_o by_o want_n of_o respiration_n become_v instant_o suffocate_v and_o extinguish_v which_o as_o have_v be_v say_v be_v the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n p._n 129._o he_o say_v he_o have_v open_v in_o his_o first_o argument_n what_o this_o breathe_n into_o man_n intend_v and_o refer_v his_o reader_n thither_o again_o for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o and_o i_o refer_v again_o unto_o the_o answer_n thereunto_o give_v second_o he_o say_v that_o such_o a_o soul_n as_o his_o opposer_n believe_v be_v subject_a in_o its_o part_n to_o division_n dissipation_n and_o corruption_n which_o i_o agree_v to_o he_o mr._n w._n say_v that_o from_o thence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o all_o god_n threat_n denounce_v against_o sinner_n be_v but_o to_o keep_v those_o inflame_a particle_n of_o the_o blood_n in_o order_n but_o i_o say_v those_o threat_n be_v pronounce_v to_o keep_v man_n person_n and_o their_o action_n in_o such_o a_o regular_a order_n and_o that_o the_o report_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v effectual_a upon_o the_o person_n of_o man_n who_o body_n will_v then_o be_v as_o able_a to_o endure_v the_o fire_n as_o their_o soul_n another_o second_o mr._n w._n say_v that_o such_o a_o temperament_n of_o soul_n can_v offend_v god_n because_o it_o be_v material_a and_o senseless_a and_o this_o i_o agree_v to_o he_o and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o the_o body_n nor_o the_o soul_n single_o that_o do_v or_o can_v offend_v god_n but_o it_o be_v the_o compositum_fw-la of_o these_o make_v intelligent_a or_o the_o person_n make_v intelligent_a which_o can_v and_o do_v too_o often_o offend_v god_n and_o by_o mr._n w_n pretence_n in_o this_o place_n he_o seem_v to_o insinuate_v that_o god_n can_v produce_v intelligence_n by_o his_o wise_a commixture_n of_o material_a agent_n and_o patient_n which_o have_v before_o be_v dispute_v and_o i_o have_v declare_v myself_o thereupon_o that_o god_n can_v produce_v intelligence_n by_o a_o most_o wise_a and_o artificial_a commixture_n of_o material_a agent_n and_o patient_n act_v by_o motion_n which_o must_v be_v continual_o supply_v from_o nutriment_n which_o god_n out_o of_o the_o ambient_fw-la world_n and_o air_n have_v continual_o produce_v in_o abundance_n for_o that_o purpose_n and_o when_o by_o famine_n or_o want_n of_o nutriment_n it_o draw_v no_o supply_n the_o person_n who_o suffer_v it_o die_v in_o multitude_n p._n 130._o mr._n w._n repeat_v that_o our_o sort_n of_o material_a soul_n can_v love_v or_o fear_n god_n nor_o understand_v what_o itself_o do_v which_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v all_o along_o grant_v and_o assert_v as_o i_o do_v here_o agree_v that_o such_o thing_n be_v not_o comportant_fw-la either_o with_o the_o soul_n or_o body_n but_o with_o the_o person_n only_o p._n 131._o he_o pretend_v that_o there_o be_v something_o in_o man_n that_o be_v the_o principal_a seat_n of_o regeneration_n this_o i_o oppose_v by_o say_v as_o before_o that_o the_o whole_a man_n or_o person_n be_v so_o and_o not_o only_o part_v of_o his_o compositum_fw-la single_o take_v what_o he_o say_v more_o flow_v out_o of_o the_o abundance_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n and_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v very_o groundless_o speak_v five_o mr._n w._n say_v that_o the_o contention_n between_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n in_o man_n can_v be_v maintain_v by_o the_o natural_a difference_n between_o a_o material_a soul_n and_o the_o body_n wherein_o it_o reside_v i_o agree_v this_o to_o he_o answer_v that_o all_o these_o contest_v between_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n signify_v no_o more_o than_o that_o continual_a war_n which_o man_n feel_v in_o themselves_o between_o the_o power_n of_o reason_n in_o their_o mind_n and_o the_o lustful_a desire_n of_o their_o affection_n and_o passion_n aristotle_n tell_v we_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o this_o war_n but_o death_n and_o no_o certainty_n which_o shall_v obtain_v a_o clear_a victory_n till_o that_o time_n and_o when_o st._n paul_n say_v that_o these_o war_n against_o the_o soul_n the_o word_n soul_n must_v there_o be_v intend_v to_o signify_v the_o person_n or_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a man_n and_o yet_o i_o do_v agree_v what_o he_o after_o say_v to_o be_v true_a that_o the_o rational_a and_o affective_a faculty_n spring_n both_o from_o the_o same_o root_n or_o composition_n of_o mankind_n and_o be_v both_o support_v by_o the_o same_o breath_n and_o nourishment_n and_o yet_o the_o faculty_n themselves_o be_v different_a and_o be_v common_o at_o strife_n one_o with_o another_o and_o as_o we_o daily_o see_v love_n and_o hatred_n joy_n and_o sorrow_n subsist_v together_o in_o one_o same_o person_n mr._n w_n philosophical_a absurdity_n which_o he_o say_v flow_v from_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n materiality_n p._n 132._o he_o say_v if_o the_o soul_n be_v material_a it_o will_v follow_v that_o man_n faculty_n of_o reason_n intellect_n and_o memory_n be_v seat_v in_o a_o corporeal_a elementary_a substance_n but_o it_o be_v very_o evident_a say_v he_o that_o none_o of_o these_o faculty_n can_v be_v immediate_o seat_v in_o any_o corporeal_a elementary_a substance_n answer_v i_o deny_v the_o evidence_n of_o what_o he_o say_v but_o apply_v all_o these_o faculty_n to_o the_o person_n in_o which_o they_o all_o certain_o be_v produce_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n act_v by_o motion_n and_o support_v and_o continue_v by_o nourishment_n and_o breath_n and_o therefore_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n may_v be_v material_a notwithstanding_o mr._n w_n assert_v the_o contrary_a p._n 133._o mr._n w._n say_v these_o faculty_n can_v be_v act_v by_o a_o material_a substance_n but_o he_o find_v these_o faculty_n in_o himself_o and_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v act_v in_o man_n by_o a_o spiritual_a substance_n this_o seem_v to_o intend_v that_o when_o man_n can_v attain_v to_o know_v the_o reason_n by_o which_o or_o the_o manner_n how_o strange_a thing_n be_v do_v they_o be_v apt_a to_o fly_v to_o the_o refuge_n of_o spirit_n for_o the_o do_v of_o they_o a_o erroneous_a course_n which_o have_v be_v very_o often_o use_v in_o the_o world_n but_o i_o refuse_v to_o mr._n w._n the_o use_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o make_v of_o it_o in_o this_o argument_n and_o do_v assure_v that_o i_o receive_v no_o manner_n of_o conviction_n from_o it_o p._n 135._o mr._n w._n say_v i_o find_v a_o power_n in_o i_o of_o sensation_n as_o see_v hear_v ctc._o but_o none_o of_o these_o faculty_n be_v seat_v in_o a_o substance_n pure_o elementary_a i_o demand_v then_o how_o come_v the_o brute_n by_o these_o which_o they_o have_v in_o as_o great_a perfection_n as_o man_n have_v they_o he_o think_v no_o man_n will_v say_v it_o be_v possible_a to_o make_v a_o sensible_a house_n by_o all_o the_o art_n that_o man_n can_v use_v about_o it_o and_o this_o i_o grant_v but_o if_o man_n shall_v say_v it_o be_v possible_a for_o god_n to_o make_v a_o sensible_a house_n i_o shall_v have_v no_o inclination_n to_o deny_v it_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v altogether_o as_o
i_o think_v that_o the_o purity_n and_o force_n of_o such_o spirit_n may_v be_v very_o conduce_v to_o the_o perfect_a performance_n of_o the_o faculty_n and_o yet_o can_v act_v no_o far_o than_o the_o bodily_a organ_n be_v in_o its_o own_o state_n and_o nature_n capable_a of_o whence_o there_o be_v a_o dependence_n of_o the_o faculty_n both_o upon_o the_o spirit_n and_o upon_o the_o organ_n but_o i_o think_v that_o the_o difference_n which_o we_o find_v among_o man_n faculty_n of_o this_o nature_n wherein_o there_o be_v great_a degree_n of_o perfection_n and_o imperfection_n do_v more_o depend_v upon_o the_o soundness_n and_o fitness_n of_o the_o organ_n than_o upon_o the_o different_a degree_n of_o activity_n among_o the_o spirit_n of_o they_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v ascend_v to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o humane_a intellect_n we_o may_v find_v that_o the_o act_n and_o perfection_n thereof_o lie_v in_o and_o by_o the_o brain_n and_o that_o the_o fantasy_n lie_v principal_o or_o only_o in_o the_o forepart_n of_o the_o head_n the_o judgement_n or_o esteemative_a faculty_n in_o the_o middle_n of_o it_o and_o the_o memory_n in_o the_o back_n part_n thereof_o whence_o if_o there_o happen_v any_o defect_n or_o crasiness_n in_o any_o of_o these_o faculty_n or_o power_n of_o intellect_n physician_n both_o do_v and_o aught_o to_o apply_v their_o medicine_n for_o the_o recovery_n of_o they_o to_o the_o organ_n or_o part_n of_o the_o head_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a instrument_n of_o such_o faculty_n if_o the_o fantasy_n be_v disorder_v the_o remedy_n thereof_o must_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o forepart_n of_o the_o head_n or_o the_o forehead_n if_o the_o judgement_n be_v craze_v such_o remedy_n must_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o middle_a part_n of_o the_o head_n and_o if_o the_o memory_n fail_v application_n for_o the_o recovery_n thereof_o must_v be_v make_v to_o the_o back_n part_n of_o the_o head_n and_o if_o medicine_n for_o the_o recovery_n of_o the_o fantasy_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o back_n part_n of_o the_o head_n they_o will_v be_v ineffectual_a to_o that_o purpose_n and_o so_o e_fw-la contra_fw-la if_o man_n will_v apply_v remedy_n to_o the_o back_n part_n of_o the_o head_n for_o recover_v the_o disorder_n of_o the_o fantasy_n man_n of_o indifferent_a skill_n can_v make_v shrewd_a guess_n concern_v the_o largeness_n and_o perfection_n of_o those_o faculty_n by_o see_v feel_v and_o peruse_v the_o dimension_n and_o fashoning_n of_o man_n head_n if_o man_n forehead_n be_v large_a and_o high_a they_o may_v reasonable_o be_v think_v to_o be_v of_o large_a fantasy_n and_o invention_n and_o if_o the_o back_n part_n of_o the_o head_n be_v likewise_o large_a and_o something_o protuberant_a in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o it_o tend_v towards_o the_o neck_n we_o may_v guess_v the_o owner_n of_o that_o organ_n to_o have_v a_o capacious_a and_o strong_a memory_n and_o concern_v the_o judgement_n we_o may_v think_v that_o the_o largeness_n of_o the_o whole_a head_n if_o it_o be_v well_o fill_v and_o without_o any_o empty_a space_n in_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sign_n of_o a_o good_a and_o sound_a judgement_n in_o those_o person_n to_o who_o god_n have_v give_v such_o a_o organ_n and_o from_o these_o topic_n i_o be_o ready_a to_o infer_v that_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o intellect_n depend_v more_o upon_o the_o soundness_n and_o gapacity_n of_o the_o organ_n than_o upon_o the_o excellency_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o act_v they_o and_o yet_o the_o power_n and_o purity_n of_o such_o spirit_n must_v be_v still_o admit_v to_o have_v a_o great_a effect_n in_o the_o production_n and_o in_o the_o degree_n of_o perfection_n in_o this_o operation_n if_o we_o shall_v particular_o consider_v the_o nature_n of_o that_o we_o call_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n we_o may_v perhaps_o find_v it_o subject_n to_o divers_a disease_n and_o infirmity_n as_o well_o as_o we_o know_v the_o body_n and_o the_o organ_n to_o be_v and_o of_o what_o sort_n soever_o we_o shall_v imagine_v this_o spirit_n of_o life_n to_o be_v daily_a experience_n may_v assure_v we_o that_o it_o oftentimes_o find_v help_n and_o remedy_n against_o the_o disorder_n and_o disease_n thereof_o by_o good_a air_n wholesome_a and_o regular_a diet_n good_a company_n music_n or_o harmony_n freedom_n from_o care_n and_o other_o easement_n and_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n as_o well_o as_o by_o medicine_n and_o help_v administer_v by_o the_o physician_n in_o divers_a case_n and_o thus_o have_v we_o run_v through_o and_o consider_v divers_a weighty_a particular_n concern_v the_o bodily_a organ_n and_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n with_o intent_n to_o apply_v the_o same_o to_o the_o two_o sort_n of_o soul_n or_o spirit_n which_o be_v now_o in_o dispute_n between_o we_o and_o have_v show_v that_o the_o perfection_n of_o humane_a power_n both_o sensitive_a and_o rational_a do_v more_o depend_v upon_o the_o aptitude_n and_o capacity_n of_o the_o bodily_a organ_n than_o upon_o that_o spirit_n which_o give_v life_n and_o motion_n to_o they_o and_o next_o that_o the_o humane_a mind_n or_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n be_v capable_a of_o melioration_n and_o detriment_n by_o many_o such_o accidental_a thing_n as_o i_o have_v before_o enumerate_v and_o express_v and_o from_o all_o these_o premise_n i_o be_o very_o apt_a to_o collect_v that_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n be_v a_o intelligent_a separable_a and_o extraneous_a be_v thing_n can_v not_o reasonable_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n as_o they_o have_v before_o be_v declare_v common_o to_o do_v but_o if_o this_o spirit_n which_o give_v life_n to_o man_n be_v take_v for_o a_o fire_n yet_o material_a and_o unintelligent_a spirit_n all_o that_o have_v before_o be_v speak_v concern_v the_o bodily_a organ_n and_o the_o spirit_n or_o mind_n of_o man_n will_v fall_v out_o to_o be_v very_o agrecable_a and_o homogenous_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o such_o a_o spirit_n and_o to_o the_o whole_a composition_n of_o the_o humane_a person_n and_o hence_o i_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o infer_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n be_v more_o likely_a to_o be_v material_a and_o unintelligent_a than_o to_o be_v such_o a_o sort_n of_o intelligent_a and_o self-subsisting_a spirit_n as_o mr._n w._n and_o his_o party_n maintain_v the_o same_o to_o be_v a_o three_o objection_n against_o mr._n w_n opinion_n i_o take_v a_o simile_n and_o raise_v from_o man_n experience_n and_o the_o common_a consideration_n of_o the_o brutal_a nature_n our_o daily_a experience_n assure_v we_o that_o by_o whatsoever_o spirit_n the_o brute_n be_v act_v they_o full_o enjoy_v the_o power_n of_o life_n and_o sense_n and_o some_o such_o measure_n of_o intellect_n as_o give_v they_o a_o sagacity_n sit_v to_o attain_v and_o accomplish_v the_o end_n of_o their_o being_n although_o '_o in_o the_o degree_n thereof_o they_o fall_v very_o much_o below_o such_o perfection_n of_o they_o as_o be_v find_v in_o man_n by_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o the_o vital_a spirit_n in_o brute_n work_v in_o and_o among_o the_o organ_n of_o their_o body_n their_o animal_n nature_n attain_v to_o as_o great_a a_o perfection_n as_o the_o humane_a nature_n do_v as_o far_o as_o concern_v the_o vegitation_n and_o sensation_n of_o they_o both_o for_o the_o brute_n live_v as_o well_o and_o as_o natural_o and_o as_o much_o as_o the_o man_n do_v and_o next_o their_o motion_n be_v as_o strong_a vigorous_a and_o active_a as_o those_o of_o the_o man_n be_v in_o both_o the_o sort_n of_o motion_n which_o be_v common_a to_o they_o first_o their_z i_o ward_v motion_n of_o heart_n lung_n bowel_n and_o other_o their_o principal_a and_o vital_a entrail_n which_o sort_v of_o motion_n we_o may_v term_v involuntary_a because_o the_o man_n or_o beast_n can_v give_v no_o stoppage_n to_o they_o but_o wake_v or_o sleep_v in_o sickness_n and_o in_o health_n such_o motion_n be_v natural_a and_o needful_a for_o maintain_v life_n in_o the_o creature_n in_o who_o power_n it_o be_v not_o to_o stop_v or_o alter_v they_o and_o this_o sort_n of_o motion_n be_v needful_a for_o and_o as_o active_a among_o beast_n as_o men._n the_o other_o sort_n of_o motion_n be_v that_o which_o man_n call_v local_a or_o voluntary_a such_o as_o that_o of_o the_o hand_n foot_n head_n and_o other_o member_n of_o the_o body_n which_o the_o creature_n can_v use_v or_o not_o use_v at_o its_o own_o like_n and_o pleasure_n and_o we_o find_v that_o the_o motion_n of_o brute_n in_o this_o kind_n be_v as_o vigorous_a nimble_a and_o strong_a as_o those_o of_o the_o man_n be_v then_o if_o we_o proceed_v to_o the_o power_n and_o practice_n of_o their_o outward_a sense_n as_o of_o see_v hear_v feel_v etc._n etc._n experience_n will_v
convince_v we_o that_o divers_a brute_n attain_v to_o as_o great_a perfection_n in_o the_o use_n of_o such_o sense_n as_o the_o generation_n of_o man_n do_v and_o some_o brute_n exceed_v the_o humane_a power_n in_o the_o practice_n and_o use_v of_o some_o of_o these_o sense_n and_o if_o we_o then_o consider_v the_o humane_a affection_n of_o lust_n wrath_n and_o fear_v we_o may_v find_v that_o the_o brutal_a nature_n be_v as_o full_a of_o these_o affection_n as_o the_o humane_a and_o that_o the_o beast_n have_v they_o in_o as_o great_a vigour_n violence_n and_o perfection_n as_o man_n have_v they_o and_o last_o if_o we_o rise_v to_o consider_v the_o power_n of_o intellect_n we_o may_v find_v that_o brute_n enjoy_v the_o true_a and_o real_a use_n of_o fantasy_n choice_n and_o memory_n so_o far_o as_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o well_o be_v of_o their_o nature_n though_o in_o a_o weak_a measure_n and_o very_o low_a degree_n if_o we_o compare_v such_o faculty_n of_o they_o with_o such_o as_o may_v be_v find_v in_o that_o kind_n among_o the_o high_a rank_n of_o man_n or_o such_o of_o they_o as_o have_v attain_v to_o great_a degree_n of_o improvement_n in_o their_o faculty_n of_o that_o kind_n it_o may_v be_v that_o if_o we_o shall_v compare_v the_o most_o stupid_a among_o man_n with_o the_o most_o sensitive_a among_o brute_n as_o with_o the_o elephant_n ape_n horse_n dog_n and_o fox_n it_o may_v be_v find_v that_o some_o of_o these_o creature_n be_v more_o docible_a and_o may_v be_v make_v more_o know_v than_o some_o of_o the_o most_o stupid_a among_o man_n so_o that_o by_o their_o teacher_n eye_n or_o continuance_n or_o their_o voice_n they_o have_v be_v make_v to_o act_n and_o perform_v divers_a thing_n which_o cause_v admiration_n in_o the_o beholder_n and_o such_o as_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o teach_v the_o stupid_a person_n among_o man_n to_o perform_v in_o such_o manner_n as_o beast_n have_v be_v know_v to_o do_v they_o there_o appear_v between_o the_o brutal_a and_o humane_a nature_n and_o composition_n very_o great_a difference_n and_o that_o the_o man_n have_v many_o advantage_n above_o the_o beast_n in_o those_o part_n and_o member_n which_o appear_v outward_o to_o the_o eye_n first_o in_o the_o member_n of_o their_o hand_n and_o tongue_n and_o the_o genuine_a and_o natural_a use_n of_o they_o both_o and_o next_o in_o the_o natural_a and_o upright_a posture_n of_o the_o humane_a body_n and_o the_o place_n of_o the_o head_n thereupon_o all_o which_o give_v great_a advantage_n to_o the_o humane_a above_o the_o brutal_a body_n and_o give_v they_o such_o capacity_n of_o act_v as_o be_v deny_v to_o all_o brute_n whatsoever_o and_o it_o seem_v we_o may_v reasonable_o suppose_v that_o there_o may_v be_v the_o like_a great_a advantage_n in_o the_o inward_a organ_n of_o humane_a above_o those_o of_o the_o brutal_a head_n and_o whereby_o the_o humane_a be_v make_v more_o capable_a of_o perform_v the_o great_a duty_n of_o their_o intellect_n than_o the_o brutal_a creature_n have_v capacity_n to_o do_v and_o yet_o we_o find_v these_o difference_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o person_n of_o man_n from_o be_v rank_v among_o the_o animal_n kind_a the_o prime_a ingredient_n into_o who_o composition_n be_v the_o same_o flesh_n blood_n bones_o breath_n nerve_n artery_n vein_n joint_n sinew_n and_o member_n which_o go_v to_o the_o composition_n of_o they_o both_o and_o experience_n may_v convince_v we_o that_o the_o life_n of_o they_o all_o be_v in_o their_o blood_n or_o that_o blood_n be_v the_o life_n of_o they_o and_o by_o the_o particle_n of_o such_o blood_n inflame_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o their_o blood_n they_o be_v all_o inlivened_a and_o act_v alike_o although_o by_o the_o structure_n of_o their_o body_n and_o the_o perfection_n of_o their_o organ_n to_o some_o purpose_n the_o humane_a nature_n have_v very_o great_a advantage_n above_o the_o brutal_a and_o these_o be_v the_o main_a difference_n which_o i_o have_v yet_o be_v able_a to_o find_v between_o the_o two_o nature_n beforementioned_a and_o i_o be_o hence_o so_o far_o convince_v as_o to_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o great_a and_o apparent_a difference_n between_o that_o sort_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n which_o act_v the_o brute_n and_o that_o sort_n of_o spirit_n which_o act_v the_o man_n as_o heretofore_o have_v general_o be_v believe_v but_o the_o spirit_n which_o act_n life_n in_o they_o both_o be_v of_o a_o more_o similar_v nature_n than_o man_n have_v former_o imagine_v they_o to_o be_v and_o from_o this_o argument_n i_o be_o ready_a to_o conclude_v that_o the_o humane_a spirit_n of_o life_n have_v a_o great_a agreement_n with_o that_o of_o the_o brutal_a and_o therefore_o i_o think_v it_o more_o probable_a to_o be_v a_o material_a unintelligent_a spirit_n than_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o intelligent_a create_v extraneous_a spirit_n make_v by_o god_n for_o each_o man_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o procreation_n and_o inject_v into_o the_o embryo_n at_o some_o incertain_a or_o unknown_a time_n which_o yet_o remain_v unperceived_a or_o undeclare_v to_o we_o and_o which_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v better_o know_v may_v deserve_v to_o be_v further_o examine_v among_o we_o upon_o these_o three_o last_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o animal_n nature_n and_o humane_a experience_n my_o first_o doubt_n concern_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n be_v found_v after_o i_o have_v hold_v out_o in_o the_o old_a opinion_n until_o my_o age_n of_o sixty_o three-year_n and_o my_o doubt_n cause_v i_o to_o search_v the_o scripture_n concern_v that_o point_n and_o there_o i_o find_v no_o concurrence_n of_o scripture_n text_n which_o be_v bring_v as_o evidence_n thereof_o and_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o text_n that_o be_v clear_a in_o the_o aff●m●nce_n of_o it_o except_o that_o of_o st._n matthew_n say_v be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n next_o that_o neither_o that_o say_v nor_o any_o other_o text_n produce_v for_o proof_n of_o that_o point_n have_v a_o principal_a 〈…〉_o teach_v or_o prove_v the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n 〈…〉_o the_o text_n produce_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o that_o opinion_n 〈…〉_o liver_a in_o a_o collateral_a manner_n and_o be_v bring_v ●_o by_o without_o man_n be_v able_a to_o make_v it_o appear_v 〈…〉_o of_o the_o text_n produce_v to_o that_o purpose_n do_v 〈…〉_o tend_v to_o declare_v or_o prove_v the_o now_o question_a 〈…〉_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n i_o find_v also_o that_o all_o their_o text_n from_o whence_o the_o consequential_a proof_n which_o they_o make_v be_v draw_v may_v receive_v reasonable_a and_o i_o think_v sufficient_a answer_n which_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o apply_v to_o they_o in_o this_o treatise_n and_o have_v satisfy_v my_o own_o understanding_n in_o they_o all_o and_o how_o far_o they_o will_v appear_v reasonable_a to_o the_o reader_n thereof_o i_o be_o willing_a to_o leave_v to_o such_o experimental_a trial_n as_o may_v be_v make_v upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o person_n as_o may_v happen_v to_o peruse_v the_o treatise_n and_o to_o the_o candour_n and_o indifferent_a censure_n of_o such_o reader_n i_o be_o willing_a to_o submit_v myself_o and_o all_o that_o i_o have_v speak_v in_o this_o treatise_n and_o concern_v this_o subject_a after_o mr._n wadsworth_n be_v finish_v the_o treatise_n before_o consider_v he_o superadds_a thereunto_o and_o subjoin_v to_o it_o a_o declamatory_n discourse_n which_o he_o entitle_v faith_n triumph_n over_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n which_o be_v not_o much_o less_o in_o bulk_n than_o his_o treatise_n before_o answer_v upon_o the_o perusal_n thereof_o i_o find_v his_o triumphal_a arch_n principal_o found_v the_o one_o end_n of_o it_o upon_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n and_o the_o other_o end_n upon_o the_o soul_n go_v to_o heaven_n immediate_o after_o death_n both_o which_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v precarious_a assumption_n i_o be_o sure_a not_o grant_v by_o his_o opposer_n and_o i_o believe_v not_o sufficient_o prove_v by_o his_o argument_n i_o find_v that_o in_o this_o discourse_n he_o repeat_v a_o three_o time_n the_o four_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o he_o think_v do_v most_o strong_o prove_v his_o opinion_n viz._n solomon_n return_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o st._n matthew_n be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n st._n luke_n be_v parable_n of_o dives_n and_o his_o relation_n of_o the_o have_v conversion_n on_o the_o cross_n i_o acknowledge_v myself_o averse_a from_o make_v often_o repetition_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o therefore_o do_v refuse_v to_o follow_v his_o example_n or_o practice_n in_o this_o point_n but_o rather_o make_v choice_n to_o refer_v my_o reader_n to_o such_o answer_n as_o be_v before_o give_v to_o these_o argument_n in_o those_o
therefore_o be_v receive_v up_o into_o high_a region_n and_o place_n where_o they_o enjoy_v such_o happiness_n and_o power_n of_o act_v as_o far_o exceed_v the_o most_o happy_a state_n upon_o earth_n this_o opinion_n of_o plato_n find_v great_a credit_n among_o the_o learned_a person_n which_o come_v after_o he_o and_o particular_o in_o the_o heathen_a and_o christian_a school_n of_o alexandria_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o write_n of_o origen_n and_o pantenus_n who_o be_v christian_n doctor_n and_o teacher_n in_o those_o school_n at_o alexandria_n and_o this_o opinion_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v also_o spread_v among_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o proselyte_n of_o their_o church_n because_o that_o when_o st._n matthew_n come_v to_o relate_v our_o lord_n doctrine_n and_o direction_n rather_o to_o fear_n god_n than_o man_n for_o that_o god_n can_v punish_v man_n after_o death_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o man_n to_o do_v he_o word_v it_o thus_o fear_v not_o man_n because_o they_o can_v only_o kill_v the_o body_n but_o can_v kill_v the_o soul_n which_o plain_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v that_o apostle_n opinion_n that_o the_o soul_n may_v have_v and_o have_v a_o natural_a subsistence_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n and_o that_o his_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o word_v our_o lord_n direction_n in_o this_o point_n as_o we_o find_v he_o to_o have_v do_v in_o the_o text_n before_o quote_v by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v before_o it_o appear_v clear_o we_o do_v not_o charge_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n with_o be_v the_o product_n of_o man_n idle_a brain_n or_o fancy_n ground_v upon_o their_o own_o desire_n of_o have_v it_o pass_v for_o a_o establish_a truth_n for_o we_o have_v show_v and_o agree_v that_o the_o same_o be_v ground_v in_o a_o learned_a antiquity_n and_o very_o great_a authority_n whence_o it_o have_v grow_v to_o be_v the_o most_o general_a and_o near_o the_o universal_a opinion_n of_o mankind_n which_o have_v be_v so_o entertain_v mother_n and_o nurse_n have_v instill_a the_o same_o into_o the_o mind_n and_o learning_n of_o their_o tender_a infant_n who_o by_o father_n and_o master_n be_v after_o far_o confirm_v in_o this_o so_o early_o radicate_v opinion_n which_o be_v after_o far_a illustrate_v and_o prove_v to_o they_o from_o pulpit_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o their_o church_n and_o this_o deduction_n manifest_v that_o we_o do_v not_o charge_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o immortality_n with_o be_v the_o product_n of_o man_n idle_a brain_n or_o fancy_n or_o their_o desire_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o as_o to_o what_o he_o pretend_v that_o the_o immortal_a opinion_n thrive_v only_o or_o most_o among_o the_o wise_a and_o best_a practiser_n of_o the_o christian_a profession_n i_o conceive_v he_o therein_o to_o be_v mistake_v and_o think_v that_o for_o every_o wise_a and_o good_a man_n which_o he_o can_v produce_v prosalted_a to_o believe_v and_o maintain_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o immortality_n i_o shall_v be_v always_o able_a to_o produce_v twenty_o sensualist_n at_o least_o and_o evil_a liver_n who_o will_v be_v ready_a with_o great_a zeal_n and_o constancy_n to_o maintain_v mr._n w_n opinion_n of_o the_o immortality_n to_o the_o uttermost_a as_o to_o his_o say_n that_o man_n attain_v to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n and_o immortality_n i_o find_v in_o myself_o no_o inclination_n to_o grant_v he_o that_o any_o man_n while_o in_o this_o world_n do_v attain_v to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o any_o of_o these_o particular_n i_o find_v it_o write_v that_o god_n make_v man_n after_o his_o own_o image_n and_o in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n make_v he_o man_n but_o i_o do_v not_o find_v myself_o able_a to_o explicate_v or_o conceive_v the_o true_a and_o full_a scope_n and_o mean_v of_o these_o expression_n nor_o wherein_o the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o man_n do_v consist_v but_o be_o very_o apt_a to_o think_v that_o man_n be_v not_o make_v like_o god_n in_o immortality_n because_o then_o there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n to_o make_v man_n live_v for_o ever_o but_o we_o read_v that_o god_n make_v that_o tree_n and_o fruit_n grow_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n to_o that_o very_a purpose_n that_o man_n by_o eat_v of_o that_o fruit_n may_v become_v immortal_a and_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o that_o upon_o his_o sin_n he_o be_v debar_v from_o eat_v of_o that_o fruit_n and_o lose_v that_o remedy_n which_o god_n have_v provide_v against_o the_o stroke_n of_o death_n and_o in_o that_o condition_n have_v his_o posterity_n remain_v ever_o since_o his_o commission_n of_o that_o sin_n against_o god_n and_o therefore_o i_o think_v st._n john_n inform_v we_o true_o when_o he_o say_v we_o know_v not_o yet_o what_o we_o shall_v be_v but_o we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o and_o therefore_o i_o leave_v the_o pretence_n to_o such_o knowledge_n to_o the_o time_n of_o our_o lord_n second_o appearance_n and_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n when_o man_n of_o good_a practice_n may_v hope_v to_o be_v like_o he_o and_o that_o i_o think_v be_v sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v the_o reasonable_a and_o most_o exalt_a desire_n of_o mankind_n p._n 3._o mr._n w._n say_v whilst_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n continue_v its_o conflict_n with_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o lust_n thereof_o as_o she_o will_v whilst_o she_o abide_v in_o the_o body_n it_o be_v needful_a to_o maintain_v in_o she_o the_o thought_n of_o her_o immortality_n here_o i_o observe_v that_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n contest_v with_o the_o flesh_n he_o say_v it_o continue_v that_o conflict_n with_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o lust_n thereof_o as_o it_o will_v whilst_o she_o abide_v in_o the_o body_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o maintain_v in_o she_o high_a thought_n of_o herself_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o speak_v he_o first_o express_v that_o spirit_n by_o the_o name_n of_o it_o and_o present_o without_o give_v any_o reason_n slide_v down_o upon_o it_o the_o title_n of_o she_o and_o her_o as_o if_o the_o daily_o contest_v betwixt_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n of_o man_n intend_v a_o contention_n between_o his_o body_n and_o a_o immortal_a intelligent_a spirit_n within_o it_o express_v that_o spirit_n by_o term_n of_o she_z and_z she_o but_o i_o differ_v from_o he_o therein_o conceive_v that_o by_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n so_o contend_v one_o against_o the_o other_o be_v chief_o and_o even_o only_o intend_v the_o contest_v which_o be_v daily_o find_v between_o man_n affection_n and_o other_o sensual_a power_n and_o the_o mind_n or_o rational_a faculty_n of_o the_o same_o person_n and_o his_o slide_v the_o term_n of_o she_o and_o her_o into_o this_o discourse_n with_o design_n to_o have_v it_o think_v that_o these_o contest_v be_v maintain_v by_o a_o intelligent_a immortal_a spirit_n against_o that_o body_n wherein_o she_o live_v look_n to_o my_o apprehension_n like_o a_o sort_n of_o legerdemain_n which_o may_v perhaps_o prevail_v upon_o very_o unwary_a reader_n but_o will_v not_o be_v suffer_v so_o to_o pass_v by_o considerate_a examiner_n of_o his_o write_n p._n 4._o he_o say_v that_o she_o his_o immortal_a spirit_n will_v continue_v her_o conflict_n with_o the_o body_n so_o long_o as_o she_o be_v in_o it_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o agree_v that_o such_o a_o contest_v between_o the_o sensual_a appetite_n and_o rational_a faculty_n of_o man_n be_v likely_a to_o continue_v throughout_o and_o during_o the_o whole_a life_n of_o the_o person_n but_o that_o this_o sort_n of_o contest_v be_v so_o maintain_v between_o the_o immortal_a intelligent_a soul_n and_o the_o body_n of_o that_o person_n who_o she_o enlivens_fw-la i_o be_o very_o apt_a and_o ready_a to_o deny_v p._n 4._o he_o say_v further_a if_o we_o seek_v encouragement_n against_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n there_o be_v no_o truth_n can_v arm_v we_o with_o a_o better_a resolution_n than_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n and_o i_o grant_v that_o if_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n sufficient_o evidence_v to_o the_o understanding_n and_o conscience_n of_o man_n it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a strengthen_n to_o such_o person_n as_o have_v a_o very_a good_a opinion_n of_o their_o own_o merit_n to_o make_v their_o passage_n through_o the_o gate_n of_o death_n with_o great_a boldness_n and_o assurance_n but_o to_o those_o who_o be_v work_v out_o their_o own_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a and_o be_v very_o humble_a in_o the_o contemplation_n of_o their_o own_o merit_n who_o tremble_v more_o at_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o sin_n than_o they_o be_v
judge_v by_o solomon_n to_o be_v the_o very_a same_o with_o the_o humane_a in_o these_o word_n yea_o they_o have_v all_o one_o breath_n in_o the_o flood_n of_o noah_n we_o read_v that_o all_o in_o who_o nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n be_v die_v in_o that_o flood_n and_o clear_v it_o be_v they_o so_o die_v because_o the_o water_n stop_v the_o passage_n of_o that_o breath_n by_o which_o they_o before_o live_v and_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v demand_v by_o what_o mean_v these_o creature_n obtain_v their_o first_o breath_n i_o conceive_v it_o be_v give_v they_o by_o the_o same_o or_o the_o like_a mean_n that_o adam_n afterward_o receive_v it_o a_o specimen_fw-la of_o which_o we_o find_v record_v ver._n 37._o where_o a_o vast_a number_n of_o dry_a bone_n receive_v a_o sudden_a and_o powerful_a resurrection_n for_o first_o they_o come_v together_o bone_n to_o his_o bone_n next_o to_o which_o lo_o the_o sinew_n and_o flesh_n come_v up_o upon_o they_o and_o then_o the_o skin_n cover_v they_o above_o but_o there_o be_v no_o breath_n in_o they_o then_o god_n command_v that_o prophet_n to_o prophesy_v unto_o the_o wind_n and_o say_v come_v from_o the_o four_o wind_n o_o breath_n and_o breathe_v upon_o these_o slay_v that_o they_o may_v live_v so_o he_o prophesy_v as_o he_o be_v command_v and_o the_o breath_n come_v into_o they_o and_o they_o live_v and_o stand_v up_o upon_o their_o foot_n a_o exceed_v great_a army_n and_o thus_o i_o conceive_v it_o fare_v with_o adam_n at_o his_o first_o creation_n the_o bone_n ligament_n and_o principal_a part_n be_v frame_v and_o fit_v one_o of_o they_o to_o another_o upon_o which_o be_v form_v their_o flesh_n and_o sinew_n over_o all_o which_o the_o skin_n be_v last_o super-induced_n and_o after_o this_o manner_n it_o seem_v adam_n body_n be_v first_o create_v and_o perfect_v although_o he_o live_v not_o because_o there_o be_v yet_o no_o breath_n in_o he_o his_o blood_n and_o humour_n be_v turgid_a and_o full_a of_o mettle_n fit_a and_o apt_a to_o tine_v and_o have_v the_o flame_n of_o life_n kindle_v in_o they_o with_o the_o first_o blast_n of_o that_o breath_n which_o god_n intend_v to_o breathe_v into_o he_o for_o that_o purpose_n and_o this_o flame_n of_o life_n he_o then_o appoint_v to_o be_v continual_o maintain_v in_o the_o body_n of_o beast_n and_o in_o the_o person_n of_o man_n by_o breathe_v and_o the_o constant_a fanning_n of_o the_o ambient_fw-la air_n so_o as_o 〈◊〉_d creature_n can_v live_v but_o a_o very_a few_o moment_n 〈…〉_o whilst_o 〈◊〉_d creature_n breathe_v they_o live_v 〈…〉_o they_o cause_n to_o breathe_v they_o cense_v to_o live_v what_o 〈…〉_o shall_v prove_v in_o this_o point_n be_v this_o that_o god_n 〈…〉_o creation_n and_o 〈…〉_o do_v create_v for_o he_o and_o for_o the_o information_n of_o that_o body_n a_o new_a spiritual_a intelligent_a circumscribe_v substance_n that_o shall_v come_v ab_fw-la extra_fw-la and_o be_v inject_v into_o that_o new_a create_a body_n by_o the_o mighty_a and_o miraculous_a work_n of_o god_n power_n 〈…〉_o he_o be_v able_a thus_o to_o prove_v i_o confess_v it_o will_v follow_v 〈…〉_o ●his_fw-la soul_n have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n before_o its_o be_v ●ast_o into_o the_o humane_a body_n and_o thence_o it_o will_v also_o be_v a_o very_a probable_a consequent_a that_o when_o at_o death_n it_o shall_v be_v again_o divide_v from_o the_o body_n it_o will_v be_v able_a to_o subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n but_o till_o the_o be_v of_o such_o a_o soul_n shall_v be_v better_o prove_v i_o hold_v the_o opinion_n of_o its_o extinguishment_n at_o the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n to_o be_v more_o probable_a p._n 14._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v two_o separate_a singular_a and_o different_a being_n mr._n w._n quote_v 1_o thess_n 5.23_o where_o st._n paul_n say_v i_o pray_v god_n your_o spirit_n soul_n and_o body_n be_v preserve_v blameless_a himself_o confess_v he_o know_v not_o well_o how_o to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o soul_n and_o spirit_n in_o this_o text_n but_o yet_o he_o declare_v himself_o certain_a that_o there_o be_v a_o distinction_n assert_v betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o body_n and_o i_o reply_v that_o the_o be_v of_o a_o distinction_n betwixt_o they_o be_v no_o good_a proof_n that_o the_o soul_n can_v subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n for_o that_o the_o relative_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n be_v real_o distinct_a one_o of_o they_o from_o the_o other_o and_o yet_o no_o division_n or_o separation_n can_v possible_o be_v admit_v among_o they_o and_o i_o far_o conceive_v upon_o this_o text_n that_o by_o st._n paul_n word_n of_o soul_n spirit_n and_o body_n he_o intend_v no_o otherwise_o than_o that_o their_o whole_a person_n soul_n and_o body_n be_v preserve_v blameless_a unto_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o i_o desire_v my_o reader_n to_o observe_v here_o that_o which_o i_o think_v to_o be_v a_o failure_n in_o our_o learned_a and_o pious_a author_n this_o text_n of_o st._n paul_n true_o and_o full_o quote_v run_v thus_o the_o very_a god_n of_o peace_n sanctify_v you_o whole_o and_o i_o pray_v god_n your_o whole_a spirit_n soul_n and_o body_n be_v preserve_v blameless_a unto_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n mr._n w._n quote_v it_o thus_o i_o pray_v god_n your_o spirit_n and_o body_n be_v preserve_v blameless_a etc._n etc._n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o omit_v the_o word_n whole_o and_o suppress_v the_o word_n whole_a in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o text_n and_o then_o cut_v it_o short_a in_o the_o end_n before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o word_n unto_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o choose_v to_o supply_v they_o by_o a_o et_fw-la cetera_fw-la it_o seem_v this_o fallacious_a way_n of_o quote_v scripture_n do_v not_o fall_v upon_o our_o author_n by_o chance_n but_o have_v a_o set_a purpose_n in_o they_o and_o that_o he_o leave_v out_o the_o word_n whole_o and_o whole_a in_o the_o text_n because_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o confirm_v and_o fortify_v my_o exposition_n of_o it_o which_o be_v that_o the_o word_n spirit_n soul_n and_o body_n do_v all_o intend_v no_o more_o but_o the_o whole_a person_n of_o his_o correspondent_o and_o he_o cut_v off_o before_o the_o word_n unto_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o may_v avoid_v produce_v a_o very_a strong_a evidence_n against_o the_o opinion_n which_o he_o maintain_v because_o st._n paul_n do_v not_o pray_v god_n to_o preserve_v their_o soul_n or_o spirit_n at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n but_o to_o preserve_v their_o whole_a person_n soul_n and_o body_n blameless_a unto_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n as_o if_o he_o know_v of_o no_o time_n of_o reward_n or_o punishment_n after_o this_o life_n unto_o the_o second_o come_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n a_o like_a charitable_a prayer_n to_o this_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o same_o apostle_n 2_o tim._n 1.16_o where_o he_o say_v the_o lord_n give_v mercy_n to_o the_o house_n of_o onesyphorus_n and_o the_o lord_n grant_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v find_v mercy_n in_o that_o day_n viz._n the_o day_n or_o time_n of_o our_o lord_n second_o come_v and_o so_o chap._n 4_o he_o say_v my_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o henceforth_o there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o to_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o appear_v these_o last_o word_n fix_v the_o time_n when_o such_o crown_n shall_v be_v distribute_v viz._n the_o time_n of_o christ_n second_o appear_v to_o the_o world_n and_o because_o the_o point_n thus_o fall_v under_o examination_n seem_v one_o of_o the_o most_o important_a which_o be_v now_o in_o question_n between_o we_o i_o will_v produce_v some_o further_a evidence_n strong_o tend_v to_o maintain_v my_o part_n of_o this_o question_n and_o place_v our_o lord_n himself_o in_o the_o front_n of_o my_o other_o witness_n he_o say_v luke_n 21.27_o then_o shall_v they_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o a_o cloud_n with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n and_o when_o those_o thing_n begin_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v then_o look_v up_o and_o lift_v up_o your_o head_n for_o your_o redemption_n draw_v nigh_o joh._n 14.2_o christ_n say_v in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o and_o if_o i_o go_v and_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o i_o will_v come_v again_o and_o receive_v you_o to_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o
you_o may_v be_v there_o also_o here_o the_o time_n when_o christ_n will_v receive_v his_o choose_a to_o himself_o and_o to_o be_v where_o he_o be_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o second_o time_n with_o his_o come_n to_o judgement_n joh._n 5.27_o god_n the_o father_n have_v give_v authority_n to_o the_o son_n to_o execute_v judgement_n also_o because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man._n ver._n 22._o christ_n say_v the_o father_n judge_v no_o man_n but_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n ver._n 28._o marvel_v not_o at_o this_o thou_o the_o father_n have_v give_v authority_n of_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n for_o the_o time_n be_v come_v in_o which_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o shall_v come_v forth_o they_o that_o have_v do_v good_a to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v evil_a to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o damnation_n here_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v make_v by_o his_o father_n the_o judge_n of_o quick_a and_o dead_a all_o the_o world_n shall_v h●ar_v his_o voice_n and_o come_v to_o judgement_n before_o he_o and_o if_o the_o father_n judge_v no_o man_n but_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v or_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n what_o room_n be_v there_o leave_v for_o intermediate_v judgement_n o●_n the_o 〈◊〉_d go_v to_o god_n for_o judgement_n at_o the_o death_n of_o every_o 〈◊〉_d as_o be_v pretend_v from_o solomon_n transient_a 〈…〉_o return_v to_o god_n that_o give_v it_o 〈…〉_o of_o the_o soul_n to_o god_n 〈…〉_o intermediate_v judgement_n 〈…〉_o go_v before_o 〈…〉_o and_o seek_v to_o be_v unite_v again_o to_o he_o as_o man_n have_v think_v it_o draw_v its_o original_a from_o he_o joh._n 6._o ver._n 39_o 40_o 44_o 54._o in_o the_o four_o verse_n quote_v and_o mark_v out_o of_o this_o chapter_n our_o lord_n declare_v both_o to_o his_o own_o disciple_n and_o to_o the_o jew_n that_o whoso_o do_v his_o will_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n he_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o give_v they_o happiness_n and_o great_a reward_n without_o mention_n of_o a_o intermediate_v state_n between_o death_n and_o that_o resurrection_n luke_n 14.13_o 14._o our_o lord_n himself_o direct_v when_o thou_o make_v a_o feast_n call_v the_o poor_a the_o maim_a the_o lame_a and_o the_o blind_a and_o thou_o shall_v be_v bless_v for_o they_o can_v recompense_v thou_o for_o thou_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o iust_o and_o so_o heb._n 11.35_o after_o a_o large_a catalogue_n of_o the_o saint_n suffering_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o they_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o deliverance_n because_o they_o expect_v a_o better_a resurrection_n the_o same_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 15.32_o say_v if_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n i_o have_v fight_v with_o beast_n at_o ephesus_n what_o advantage_v it_o i_o if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o let_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o to_o morrow_n we_o die_v and_o there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o we_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o suffering_n of_o christian_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n shall_v avail_v they_o nothing_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o i_o demand_v some_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v produce_v which_o express_v or_o with_o any_o clearness_n say_v that_o any_o man_n or_o man_n ever_o do_v or_o suffer_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o intent_n or_o with_o expectation_n of_o have_v their_o soul_n or_o soul_n carry_v into_o abraham_n bosom_n after_o the_o death_n of_o their_o person_n to_o our_o forequote_v text_n may_v be_v add_v the_o testimony_n of_o st._n peter_n 1_o pet._n 4.13_o rejoice_v inasmuch_o as_o you_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o christ_n suffering_n that_o when_o his_o glory_n shall_v be_v reveal_v you_o may_v be_v glad_a also_o with_o exceed_v great_a joy_n so_o chap._n 5.1_o he_o say_v i_o who_o be_o also_o a_o partaker_n of_o the_o glory_n which_o shall_v be_v reveal_v exhort_v you_o that_o be_v elder_n of_o the_o church_n to_o do_v the_o duty_n faithful_o and_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v you_o shall_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n which_o sade_v not_o away_o he_o do_v not_o say_v have_v patience_n unto_o to_o the_o time_n of_o your_o death_n and_o then_o your_o soul_n shall_v be_v transport_v into_o a_o place_n of_o bliss_n and_o happiness_n 1_o joh._n 2.28_o that_o apostle_n say_v and_o now_o little_a child_n abide_v in_o he_o christ_n that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o may_v have_v confidence_n and_o not_o be_v ashamed_a before_o he_o at_o his_o come_n jam._n 5.7_o that_o apostle_n say_v be_v patient_a therefore_o brethren_n unto_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o he_o say_v draws_z nigh_o without_o mention_v of_o any_o reward_n after_o death_n unto_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n judas_n 17._o say_v the_o lord_n come_v with_o ten_o thousand_o of_o his_o saint_n to_o execute_v judgement_n upon_o all_o the_o ungodly_a among_o men._n and_o thus_o i_o have_v quote_v a_o great_a cloud_n of_o very_a know_a witness_n viz._n our_o lord_n himself_o and_o all_o his_o write_a apostle_n which_o be_v come_v to_o our_o hand_n for_o the_o undeniable_a proof_n of_o this_o point_n viz._n that_o the_o faithful_a die_v and_o suffer_v many_o great_a thing_n in_o assure_a hope_n and_o expectation_n of_o great_a reward_n to_o be_v give_v and_o punishment_n to_o be_v inflict_v at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o lord_n second_o appear_v of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o of_o the_o last_o judgement_n without_o find_v any_o footstep_n of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n it_o be_v separate_a subsistence_n from_o the_o body_n or_o any_o reward_n or_o punishment_n to_o be_v bestow_v upon_o it_o in_o the_o space_n of_o time_n intermediate_v between_o death_n and_o our_o lord_n second_o appear_v i_o now_o return_v to_o a_o further_a consideration_n of_o our_o author_n quotation_n who_o pag._n 14._o go_v on_o and_o quote_v 1_o cor._n 6.20_o you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n therefore_o glorify_v god_n in_o your_o body_n and_o in_o your_o spirit_n which_o be_v god_n which_o i_o think_v intend_v no_o more_o than_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v glorify_v god_n in_o yourselves_o or_o in_o your_o whole_a person_n which_o be_v god_n then_o he_o quote_v mat._n 10.28_o man_n that_o can_v kill_v the_o body_n be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n we_o shall_v hear_v this_o objection_n more_o full_o offer_v in_o another_o place_n and_o thither_o i_o refer_v my_o reader_n for_o a_o answer_n to_o it_o he_o next_o quote_v 1_o cor_n 7.1_o where_o the_o word_n be_v dear_o belove_v let_v we_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n here_o by_o the_o term_n flesh_n and_o spirit_n the_o apostle_n intend_v man_n sensual_a ●_z and_o appetite_n by_o the_o term_n flesh_n and_o the_o rational_a mind_n or_o faculty_n of_o man_n by_o the_o term_n spirit_n and_o this_o tropical_a sort_n or_o manner_n of_o express_v himself_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v very_o much_o use_v in_o this_o apostle_n write_n next_o he_o quote_v gal._n 5.17_o which_o say_v the_o flesh_n lu_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n against_o the_o flesh_n and_o these_o be_v contrary_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o this_o i_o think_v to_o be_v another_o of_o this_o apostle_n expression_n to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o same_o intent_n and_o meaning_n with_o the_o former_a as_o a_o conclusion_n to_o the_o text_n before_o quote_v he_o say_v he_o can_v quote_v more_o text_n to_o prove_v that_o wide_a difference_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v between_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n i_o say_v to_o this_o that_o if_o he_o know_v of_o more_o text_n very_o pertinent_a to_o this_o purpose_n i_o think_v he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v spare_v his_o pain_n in_o the_o quotation_n of_o they_o but_o say_v he_o the_o text_n which_o i_o have_v already_o quote_v be_v abundant_o sufficient_a for_o the_o proof_n of_o my_o first_o proposition_n which_o first_o proposition_n i_o think_v to_o have_v be_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v of_o a_o quite_o different_a nature_n from_o the_o body_n viz._n that_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o immortal_a intelligent_a spirit_n which_o can_v subsist_v by_o itself_o and_o in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n and_o the_o body_n itself_o but_o a_o compositum_fw-la of_o dust_n and_o ash_n into_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v again_o resolve_v soon_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n the_o late_a part_n of_o this_o proposition_n he_o neither_o have_v offer_v to_o prove_v nor_o need_v to_o do_v it_o because_o it_o
be_v a_o truth_n grant_v on_o both_o side_n but_o his_o labour_n have_v be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o separable_a intelligent_a spirit_n and_o of_o a_o quite_o different_a nature_n from_o the_o body_n but_o i_o think_v he_o have_v here_o give_v very_o little_a proof_n to_o that_o purpose_n so_o far_o from_o be_v abundant_o sufficient_a as_o that_o i_o think_v it_o scarce_o touch_v upon_o the_o verges_z of_o his_o intend_a proposition_n but_o how_o sufficient_o he_o have_v thereof_o acquit_v himself_o i_o do_v free_o and_o willing_o leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o person_n as_o may_v happen_v to_o peruse_v our_o write_n p._n 15._o mr._n w._n deliver_v his_o second_o proposition_n which_o he_o say_v be_v this_o that_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v not_o only_o two_o in_o number_n but_o that_o they_o be_v two_o being_n of_o a_o very_a different_a nature_n his_o second_o proposition_n seem_v to_o be_v so_o near_o of_o kin_n to_o his_o first_o that_o the_o difference_n between_o they_o be_v not_o very_o evident_a and_o the_o proof_n which_o he_o give_v of_o this_o second_o proposition_n seem_v to_o be_v coincident_a with_o the_o proof_n which_o he_o give_v of_o the_o former_a for_o he_o say_v here_o that_o the_o soul_n be_v immediate_o create_v by_o god_n which_o supposal_n he_o have_v before_o lay_v down_o as_o a_o proof_n of_o his_o first_o proposition_n and_o i_o have_v give_v it_o before_o such_o a_o answer_n as_o satisfy_v my_o own_o understanding_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v need_v to_o say_v no_o more_o of_o it_o here_o but_o that_o it_o pass_v with_o i_o for_o a_o unsound_a and_o fallacious_a opinion_n whence_o i_o think_v fit_a to_o reject_v without_o further_a examination_n all_o the_o inference_n and_o argument_n which_o he_o may_v pretend_v to_o draw_v from_o so_o unweak_a and_o unsound_a a_o supposition_n he_o quote_v for_o a_o proof_n of_o it_o gen._n 2.7_o which_o be_v before_o examine_v and_o in_o this_o place_n i_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o of_o it_o he_o say_v further_a the_o body_n and_o all_o its_o part_n be_v but_o lifeless_a senseless_a thing_n in_o themselves_o and_o herein_o i_o grant_v he_o say_v true_a and_o so_o be_v the_o three_o element_n of_o fire_n air_n and_o water_n and_o yet_o the_o two_o former_a be_v of_o so_o active_a a_o nature_n that_o they_o be_v always_o in_o motion_n like_o those_o particle_n which_o we_o call_v mote_n in_o the_o sun_n and_o therefore_o may_v just_o have_v the_o reputation_n of_o self-moving_a principle_n and_o water_n have_v a_o propensity_n to_o motion_n so_o natural_a that_o give_v it_o but_o a_o declivity_n and_o it_o can_v have_v no_o rest_n till_o it_o come_v to_o a_o place_n so_o even_o as_o it_o may_v stand_v in_o a_o equilibrium_n free_a from_o the_o impulse_n of_o any_o declination_n whatsoever_o it_o seem_v then_o that_o upon_o rind_v and_o kindle_v the_o pullulent_fw-la steam_v of_o old_a adam_n blood_n and_o humour_n ready_a for_o that_o purpose_n that_o breath_n which_o god_n then_o breathe_v into_o his_o nostril_n become_v the_o breath_n of_o life_n to_o he_o by_o kindle_v the_o flame_n of_o life_n in_o those_o steam_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o humour_n which_o god_n have_v make_v ready_a for_o that_o operation_n and_o this_o flame_n or_o glow_v of_o the_o blood_n be_v immediate_o catch_v and_o disperss_v into_o the_o vital_a and_o all_o other_o part_n of_o the_o body_n put_v they_o all_o in_o motion_n and_o attendency_n to_o perform_v all_o those_o operation_n for_o which_o god_n have_v make_v they_o and_o we_o may_v conceive_v be_v intend_v to_o be_v produce_v in_o the_o person_n then_o create_v and_o in_o all_o other_o person_n which_o shall_v after_o be_v generate_v by_o he_o whence_o it_o seem_v that_o what_o be_v call_v the_o breath_n of_o life_n to_o adam_n the_o same_o breath_n or_o ambient_fw-la air_n become_v the_o breath_n of_o life_n to_o all_o posterity_n for_o by_o this_o medium_fw-la suck_v in_o by_o the_o lung_n the_o flame_n of_o life_n first_o kindle_v in_o the_o body_n be_v fan_v and_o keep_v glow_v in_o the_o blood_n and_o humour_n thereof_o and_o thus_o the_o flame_n of_o life_n must_v be_v continual_o fan_v maintain_v and_o purify_v by_o the_o breath_n and_o by_o the_o vigour_n and_o activity_n of_o this_o inflammation_n the_o blood_n and_o humour_n be_v keep_v in_o perpetual_a motion_n and_o in_o a_o durable_a and_o endless_a circulation_n so_o long_o as_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n be_v able_a to_o endure_v the_o activity_n of_o such_o motion_n and_o until_o by_o age_n or_o decay_n of_o some_o of_o the_o bodily_a part_n corruption_n or_o stagnation_n of_o the_o blood_n or_o by_o some_o accident_n this_o flame_n of_o life_n happen_v to_o be_v total_o extinguish_v throughout_o every_o part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o body_n and_o such_o total_a extinguishment_n of_o the_o vital_a flame_n i_o esteem_v to_o be_v the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n find_v and_o believe_v that_o the_o breath_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n be_v so_o necessary_a in_o they_o for_o maintain_v the_o flame_n of_o life_n that_o by_o a_o short_a stoppage_n of_o the_o same_o by_o a_o halter_n a_o bowstring_n a_o piece_n of_o phlegm_n or_o by_o a_o fly_n stick_v in_o one_o throat_n stop_v the_o mouth_n and_o nostril_n with_o a_o cloth_n as_o hazael_n serve_v his_o master_n benhadab_n or_o any_o like_a accident_n both_o man_n and_o beast_n soon_o die_v and_o therefore_o such_o mean_n be_v often_o use_v for_o do_v execution_n upon_o they_o and_o the_o reason_n thereof_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o suffocation_n and_o stifle_v of_o this_o vital_a flame_n which_o can_v no_o long_o by_o natural_a mean_n be_v maintain_v without_o the_o fan_a of_o this_o breath_n of_o life_n draw_v from_o the_o ambient_fw-la air_n which_o pass_v through_o the_o lung_n be_v thence_o communicate_v to_o all_o the_o entrail_n of_o the_o body_n and_o from_o these_o ground_n i_o argue_v that_o though_o the_o blood_n and_o humour_n be_v but_o matter_n and_o unintelligent_a in_o themelve_n as_o well_o as_o the_o flesh_n bones_o and_o other_o gross_a part_n of_o he_o body_n yet_o god_n great_a wisdom_n have_v so_o frame_v the_o microcosm_n or_o person_n and_o so_o organise_v the_o body_n of_o they_o as_o that_o every_o part_n be_v fit_v and_o ready_a for_o those_o act_n for_o which_o they_o be_v intend_v and_o these_o organ_n right_o move_v and_o act_v by_o the_o spirit_n inflame_v and_o humour_n of_o the_o body_n do_v in_o a_o right_a mixture_n one_o with_o another_o and_o by_o the_o work_n of_o such_o spirit_n among_o and_o upon_o the_o organ_n produce_v or_o effect_v thelocal_a motion_n sense_n and_o such_o intelligence_n as_o pertain_v to_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o be_v produce_v act_v and_o perform_v in_o the_o several_a species_n of_o they_o so_o long_o as_o those_o spirit_n and_o humour_n be_v maintain_v in_o the_o body_n by_o a_o due_a refection_n and_o nourishment_n and_o so_o long_o as_o this_o vital_a flame_n continue_v to_o be_v fan_v by_o the_o due_a respiration_n both_o of_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o this_o i_o give_v for_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o second_o proof_n of_o his_o second_o proposition_n concern_v the_o vast_a diversity_n as_o he_o call_v it_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o soul_n from_o that_o of_o the_o body_n mr._n w._n go_v on_o to_o a_o three_o proof_n of_o this_o diversity_n and_o say_v the_o body_n be_v often_o tire_v and_o spend_v and_o indispose_v to_o action_n when_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o soul_n have_v a_o will_n and_o be_v bend_v to_o action_n which_o i_o thus_o paraphrase_n the_o man_n his_o mind_n affection_n or_o will_v may_v be_v strong_o bend_v to_o action_n when_o his_o bodily_a member_n may_v be_v very_o weary_a and_o his_o spirit_n spend_v and_o thus_o express_v i_o grant_v and_o know_v that_o what_o he_o say_v may_v be_v true_a viz._n that_o the_o spirit_n work_v in_o his_o brain_n and_o move_v his_o affection_n and_o will_v may_v continue_v their_o work_v and_o vigour_n in_o that_o part_n long_o than_o in_o the_o outward_a and_o more_o rem●t_a part_n of_o the_o body_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o our_o lord_n i_o think_v intend_a when_o he_o say_v the_o spirit_n be_v willing_a but_o the_o flesh_n be_v weak_a p._n 16._o mr._n w._n go_v on_o and_o say_v the_o body_n be_v very_o frequent_o 〈◊〉_d a_o very_a sick_a weak_a languish_a condition_n when_o the_o 〈…〉_o as_o good_a a_o plight_n and_o sometime_o better_a than_o when_o the_o 〈…〉_o most_o healthy_a and_o strong_a sure_o if_o their_o nature_n do_v not_o u●●●ly_o differ_v they_o will_v be_v sick_a and_o well_o together_o here_o i_o prosess_v to_o differ_v from_o our_o author_n in_o a_o point_n of_o fact_n
even_o down_o to_o latter_a time_n and_o the_o same_o conception_n seem_v to_o have_v a_o be_v and_o substance_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o some_o learned_a person_n until_o this_o time_n my_o discourse_n concern_v this_o sort_n of_o spirit_n have_v be_v deliver_v with_o intent_n to_o discover_v and_o evince_v that_o solomon_n spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o be_v speak_v and_o mean_v by_o he_o concern_v this_o last_o sort_n of_o spirit_n and_o i_o intend_v to_o recite_v some_o argument_n for_o the_o prove_v of_o this_o construction_n first_o i_o argue_v from_o the_o word_n or_o term_n of_o the_o text_n itself_o and_o say_v that_o it_o solomon_n intend_v such_o a_o soul_n as_o mr._n w._n have_v describe_v the_o text_n itself_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v proper_o word_v because_o i_o think_v nothing_o can_v be_v proper_o say_v to_o return_v to_o another_o thing_n except_o it_o have_v be_v a_o part_n or_o concomitant_a of_o that_o other_o thing_n before_o but_o mr._n w.'s_n sort_n of_o soul_n seem_v never_o to_o have_v be_v a_o part_n or_o concomitant_a of_o god_n before_o its_o be_v put_v into_o the_o body_n for_o the_o enliven_a and_o act_v of_o the_o person_n i_o do_v not_o therefore_o well_o perceive_v how_o such_o a_o ●oul_n can_v be_v proper_o say_v to_o return_v to_o god_n but_o the_o expression_n therereunto_o proper_o belong_v shall_v have_v be_v word_v the_o spirit_n go_v to_o or_o go_v before_o god_n with_o expectation_n to_o receive_v his_o judgement_n and_o sentence_n according_a to_o the_o demeanour_n of_o its_o person_n upon_o earth_n and_o i_o do_v not_o perceive_v how_o this_o soul_n go_v to_o god_n for_o judgement_n can_v be_v proper_o call_v a_o return_n to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o second_o i_o argue_v i_o find_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o text_n in_o scripture_n which_o say_v the_o soul_n of_o die_a person_n go_v present_o to_o god_n for_o judgement_n nor_o any_o text_n from_o whence_o this_o opinion_n may_v be_v draw_v by_o a_o rational_a inference_n and_o that_o which_o make_v near_a approach_n to_o it_o of_o any_o that_o i_o know_v be_v the_o parable_n of_o dives_n where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o beggar_n die_v and_o be_v carry_v by_o angel_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n i_o know_v my_o opposer_n will_v think_v it_o needless_a to_o ask_v they_o what_o be_v intend_v by_o the_o word_n the_o beggar_n be_v carry_v by_o the_o angel_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o doubt_v not_o but_o they_o will_v soon_o make_v a_o bold_a answer_n it_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v the_o beggar_n himself_o that_o be_v so_o carry_v in_o his_o whole_a person_n body_n and_o soul_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o yet_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n seem_v to_o import_v that_o his_o whole_a person_n soul_n and_o body_n be_v carry_v thither_o but_o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v their_o gloss_n upon_o this_o text_n to_o be_v true_a that_o his_o soul_n only_o be_v carry_v by_o angel_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n we_o may_v draw_v these_o inference_n from_o that_o relation_n either_o that_o his_o soul_n be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o it_o know_v not_o how_o to_o find_v a_o way_n to_o that_o habitation_n or_o else_o be_v so_o weak_a and_o impotent_a as_o it_o be_v not_o able_a to_o pass_v thither_o without_o the_o support_n and_o ministry_n of_o angel_n how_o then_o can_v we_o conceive_v that_o such_o a_o soul_n as_o this_o shall_v make_v its_o return_n to_o god_n present_o upon_o the_o death_n of_o its_o person_n without_o mention_n of_o any_o other_o assistance_n to_o be_v give_v it_o we_o hear_v nothing_o of_o dives_n in_o the_o parable_n but_o that_o be_v in_o hell_n he_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n and_o see_v lazarus_n in_o another_o place_n without_o mention_n of_o the_o mean_n by_o which_o he_o come_v there_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v follow_v the_o common_a conjecture_n that_o as_o lazarus_n be_v carry_v to_o one_o place_n by_o angel_n so_o dives_n be_v hurry_v to_o the_o other_o by_o devil_n it_o will_v appear_v very_o unlikely_a that_o mr._n w.'s_n sort_n of_o soul_n be_v able_a to_o make_v its_o way_n and_o return_v to_o god_n at_o its_o pleasure_n and_o here_o we_o read_v the_o beggar_n be_v soul_n be_v carry_v by_o angel_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n without_o mention_n of_o its_o be_v carry_v or_o return_v to_o god_n at_o all_o whence_o it_o seem_v probable_a that_o when_o solomon_n speak_v of_o the_o soul_n return_v to_o god_n he_o do_v not_o intend_v such_o a_o soul_n as_o mr._n w._n have_v describe_v but_o rather_o such_o a_o spirit_n as_o have_v first_o be_v a_o part_n o●_n parcel_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o nature_n or_o of_o god_n send_v out_o for_o the_o enliven_a and_o act_v of_o a_o particular_a person_n upon_o who_o death_n that_o spark_n or_o parcel_n of_o the_o deity_n return_v with_o a_o strong_a inclination_n to_o god_n who_o send_v it_o out_o from_o himself_o for_o the_o enliven_a ●nd_n act_v of_o that_o particular_a body_n and_o join_v itself_o again_o to_o its_o totum_fw-la as_o water_n present_o incorporate_v with_o water_n and_o the_o particle_n of_o air_n neither_o will_n nor_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o incorporate_n one_o of_o they_o with_o a_o other_o three_o i_o argue_v that_o if_o solomon_n have_v intend_v by_o the_o word_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o a_o go_v of_o the_o soul_n to_o god_n or_o before_o god_n for_o receive_v the_o doom_n of_o his_o intermediate_v judgement_n it_o seem_v a_o matter_n of_o such_o great_a moment_n as_o require_v a_o more_o full_a discourse_n upon_o the_o same_o and_o give_v we_o more_o light_a in_o it_o than_o his_o very_a few_o word_n there_o do_v afford_v we_o and_o however_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v immediate_o subjoin_v to_o his_o discourse_n which_o intimate_v a_o intermediate_v judgement_n a_o declaration_n and_o description_n of_o the_o general_n judgement_n for_o that_o will_v have_v be_v play_v judgement_n upon_o judgement_n which_o must_v needs_o have_v pass_v for_o false_a heraldry_n we_o find_v in_o this_o chapter_n that_o as_o soon_o as_o solomon_n have_v write_v the_o word_n the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o he_o cease_v to_o speak_v any_o further_o concern_v the_o state_n of_o man_n after_o death_n till_o he_o come_v to_o the_o 14_o or_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n where_o he_o say_v as_o a_o conclusion_n of_o his_o whole_a matter_n fear_v god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n for_o god_n will_v bring_v every_o work_n into_o judgement_n with_o every_o secret_a thing_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v evil_a i_o think_v it_o not_o reasonable_a to_o conjecture_v that_o solomon_n by_o his_o return_v of_o the_o spirit_n to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o do_v intend_v such_o a_o return_v to_o god_n to_o be_v a_o go_n to_o he_o or_o before_o he_o for_o a_o intermediate_v judgement_n for_o that_o if_o he_o have_v so_o intend_v he_o will_v not_o have_v immediate_o have_v mention_v and_o relate_v the_o certainty_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o general_n judgement_n as_o in_o this_o we_o see_v plain_o he_o have_v do_v and_o thus_o i_o leave_v solomon_n word_n and_o the_o descant_n upon_o they_o to_o the_o further_a consideration_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o intelligent_a reader_n mr._n w._n go_v on_o to_o quote_v eccl._n 3_o 20._o where_o he_o say_v solomon_n affirm_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n go_v upward_o when_o he_o die_v add_v that_o solomon_n bring_v it_o in_o with_o a_o intrrogation_n who_o know_v not_o as_o if_o he_o doubt_v it_o for_o he_o can_v be_v say_v to_o doubt_v it_o since_o he_o deliver_v it_o most_o positive_o in_o the_o other_o verse_n intend_v as_o i_o conceive_v the_o text_n last_o before_o quote_v out_o of_o his_o 12_o ch._n hereupon_o i_o again_o declare_v i_o be_o no_o way_n satisfy_v with_o the_o manner_n use_v by_o our_o author_n in_o his_o quotation_n of_o scripture_n the_o text_n which_o in_o this_o place_n he_o quote_v say_v thus_o who_o know_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n that_o go_v upward_o and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o go_v downward_o to_o the_o earth_n which_o to_o my_o understanding_n have_v the_o same_o signification_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v who_o know_v the_o certain_a truth_n of_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n go_v upward_o and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o beast_n go_v downward_o to_o the_o earth_n or_o who_o know_v whether_o this_o difference_n between_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n be_v real_a and_o true_a or_o not_o and_o further_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o this_o interrogation_n be_v pregnant_a with_o a_o negative_a and_o seem_v to_o have_v the_o same_o sense_n as_o if_o have_v say_v
lord_n word_n luke_n 23.46_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o contend_v that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o text_n may_v and_o do_v indifferent_o signify_v sometime_o breath_n and_o sometime_o spirit_n according_a as_o may_v be_v require_v by_o the_o subject_a matter_n of_o that_o discourse_n wherein_o it_o be_v use_v and_o i_o do_v not_o blame_v our_o translator_n for_o render_v it_o in_o this_o place_n by_o the_o english_a word_n spirit_n but_o then_o i_o intend_v that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o well_o render_v yet_o in_o this_o place_n it_o may_v have_v and_o likely_a have_v a_o tropical_a signification_n by_o a_o very_a usual_a synecdoche_n partis_fw-la pro_fw-la toto_fw-la by_o the_o word_n spirit_n intend_v his_o whofe_o person_n now_o die_v he_o know_v very_o well_o that_o his_o whole_a person_n body_n and_o soul_n be_v to_o rise_v again_o upon_o the_o sunday_n morning_n after_o his_o crucifixion_n which_o be_v finish_v upon_o the_o friday_n in_o the_o evening_n after_o three_o of_o the_o clock_n according_a to_o which_o we_o read_v he_o be_v so_o raise_v on_o sunday_n morning_n at_o the_o very_a break_n of_o day_n in_o his_o whole_a person_n both_o soul_n and_o body_n the_o very_a same_o that_o die_v be_v then_o raise_v by_o divine_a power_n whence_o i_o collect_v our_o lord_n recommend_v to_o his_o father_n all_o that_o be_v after_o to_o be_v raise_v viz._n his_o whole_a person_n soul_n and_o body_n signify_v and_o intend_v by_o the_o word_n or_o term_n of_o spirit_n mr._n w._n quote_v further_a act_v 7.57_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o may_v well_o enough_o have_v be_v thus_o translate_v lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o breath_n spend_v in_o the_o last_o moment_n of_o my_o life_n in_o maintain_v the_o truth_n of_o thy_o gospel_n although_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o our_o version_n by_o the_o word_n spirit_n be_v likewise_o a_o good_a translation_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o then_o i_o pretend_v it_o must_v be_v take_v in_o the_o like_o figurative_a signification_n as_o it_o be_v intend_v before_o in_o our_o lord_n ejaculation_n mr._n w._n say_v in_o both_o these_o place_n he_o take_v the_o word_n spirit_n to_o signify_v that_o spirit_n fore-kind_n which_o god_n breathe_v into_o man_n at_o first_o when_o he_o become_v a_o live_a soul_n or_o person_n and_o so_o do_v i_o take_v it_o but_o our_o difference_n be_v about_o what_o sort_n that_o spirit_n be_v which_o god_n breathe_v into_o adam_n whereby_o he_o become_v a_o live_a person_n i_o pretend_v it_o to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o moderate_a portion_n of_o the_o ambient_fw-la air_n which_o by_o face_v the_o blood_n and_o humour_n then_o turgid_a and_o fit_v for_o that_o operation_n may_v kindle_v the_o flame_n of_o life_n among_o they_o and_o shall_v after_o by_o respiration_n keep_v the_o same_o in_o a_o glow_a or_o flame_a condition_n or_o circulation_n so_o long_o as_o the_o life_n of_o the_o person_n shall_v endure_v but_o mr._n w._n pretend_v that_o god_n breathe_v into_o adam_n nostril_n a_o new_o create_v entire_a substantial_a intelligent_a spirit_n which_o have_v a_o subsistence_n of_o its_o own_o before_o its_o be_v breathe_v into_o adam_n nostril_n and_o shall_v have_v a_o like_a subsistence_n of_o its_o own_o again_o at_z or_o after_o the_o dissolution_n or_o death_n of_o the_o person_n at_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o four_o proposition_n he_o promise_v and_o i_o believe_v intend_v to_o prove_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o his_o sort_n of_o soul_n he_o have_v not_o yet_o to_o my_o understanding_n perform_v it_o but_o how_o well_o he_o have_v aquit_v himself_o of_o that_o design_n or_o intention_n by_o his_o medium_n of_o prove_v recite_v in_o this_o proposition_n shall_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o indifferent_a reader_n p._n 23_o mr._n w._n deliver_v his_o five_o proposition_n which_o be_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n separate_v from_o their_o body_n by_o death_n be_v in_o joy_n or_o misery_n and_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o assertion_n he_o quote_v two_o and_o but_o two_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o bible_n the_o first_o of_o which_o be_v our_o lord_n promise_v to_o the_o thief_n upon_o the_o cross_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v with_o he_o that_o day_n in_o paradise_n upon_o which_o he_o say_v neither_o jesus_n nor_o the_o thief_n be_v that_o day_n in_o body_n there_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v there_o in_o soul_n only_o upon_o which_o i_o observe_v a_o disagreement_n in_o my_o mind_n from_o that_o which_o he_o first_o affirm_v conceive_v it_o probable_a that_o their_o body_n and_o soul_n may_v both_o be_v present_a in_o paradise_n that_o day_n but_o then_o i_o do_v not_o confine_v the_o term_n of_o that_o day_n to_o the_o signification_n of_o a_o artificial_a or_o natural_a day_n the_o first_o continue_v but_o during_o the_o light_n of_o one_o day_n and_o the_o other_o contain_v the_o space_n of_o twenty_o four_o hour_n only_o and_o no_o more_o psal_n 95_o 8._o david_n say_v to_o day_n if_o you_o will_v hear_v his_o voice_n harden_v not_o your_o heart_n heb._n 3.13_o exhort_v one_o another_o daily_a while_o it_o be_v call_v to_o day_n and_o there_o quote_v david_n to_o day_n as_o if_o it_o intend_v the_o forty_o year_n travel_v in_o the_o wilderness_n luke_n 19.42_o christ_n weep_v over_o jerusalem_n and_o say_v if_o thou_o have_v know_v even_o thou_o at_o least_o in_o this_o thy_o day_n the_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o thy_o peace_n and_o peter_n say_v a_o thousand_o year_n with_o god_n be_v but_o as_o one_o day_n and_o the_o prophet_n often_o denote_v the_o space_n of_o a_o year_n by_o one_o day_n more_o like_a testimony_n may_v be_v collect_v out_o of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o when_o god_n himself_o or_o by_o his_o prophet_n speak_v of_o a_o day_n they_o do_v not_o tie_v up_o the_o signification_n thereof_o to_o the_o precise_a time_n of_o a_o artificial_a or_o natural_a day_n but_o do_v intend_v that_o within_o a_o competent_a short_a time_n such_o thing_n shall_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o i_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o prolong_v the_o signification_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o day_n in_o mr_n w.'s_n quote_v text_n beyond_o sunday_n for_o they_o be_v crucify_a upon_o friday_n in_o the_o evening_n and_o the_o one_o die_v and_o the_o other_o may_v well_o enough_o rise_v up_o on_o sunday_n morning_n and_o that_o morning_n our_o lord_n appear_v first_o to_o mary_n magdalene_n and_o john_n 20.17_o in_o discourse_n say_v unto_o she_o touch_v i_o not_o for_o i_o be_o not_o yet_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n verse_n 19_o the_o same_o day_n at_o evening_n be_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n come_v jesus_n and_o stand_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o apostle_n and_o show_v they_o his_o hand_n and_o his_o side_n luke_n 24.38_o say_v the_o disciple_n be_v afraid_a of_o our_o lord_n be_v appear_v and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o why_o be_v you_o trouble_v and_o why_o do_v thought_n arise_v in_o your_o heart_n behold_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n that_o it_o be_v i_o myself_o handle_v i_o and_o see_v for_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v from_o these_o relation_n i_o collect_v that_o after_o our_o lord_n appear_v to_o mary_n magdalene_n he_o do_v ascend_v to_o his_o father_n and_o may_v then_o also_o go_v to_o that_o paradise_n intend_v for_o the_o thief_n and_o that_o in_o the_o evening_n of_o that_o day_n he_o appear_v in_o the_o assembly_n of_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_v to_o they_o handle_v i_o and_o see_v for_o perceive_v for_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o may_v feel_v i_o have_v hence_o i_o infer_v that_o our_o lord_n have_v be_v in_o heaven_n or_o paradise_n on_o the_o very_a day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o after_o his_o return_n from_o thence_o offer_v himself_o to_o be_v handle_v and_o feel_v by_o his_o disciple_n although_o before_o his_o ascend_v thither_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v mary_n magdalene_n to_o touch_v he_o and_o this_o i_o think_v prove_v our_o lord_n to_o have_v be_v in_o paradise_n in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n after_o his_o promise_n to_o the_o thief_n as_o may_v well_o be_v call_v to_o day_n concern_v the_o thief_n i_o observe_v that_o he_o die_v likewise_o upon_o friday_n evening_n and_o that_o from_o thence_o to_o sunday_n morning_n his_o body_n may_v remain_v apparent_a without_o liklihood_n of_o be_v taint_v we_o read_v matt._n 27.52_o the_o grave_n be_v open_v and_o many_o body_n of_o saint_n which_o sleep_v arise_v and_o come_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n after_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n and_o go_v into_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o appear_v unto_o many_o arguendo_fw-la from_o these_o
weak_o prove_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n or_o their_o receive_a reward_n or_o punishment_n before_o the_o second_o come_v of_o our_o lord_n to_o judgement_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a p._n 24._o mr._n w._n close_v up_o his_o five_o proposition_n with_o these_o word_n have_v clear_v up_o the_o five_o proposition_n from_o diverss_n scripture_n he_o wonder_v at_o the_o confidence_n of_o such_o man_n as_o dare_v pretend_v to_o persuade_v people_n that_o we_o have_v no_o clear_a scripture_n to_o found_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n on_o i_o answer_v that_o his_o confident_a say_n which_o prove_v not_o i_o willing_o pass_v by_o and_o from_o the_o woe_n pronounce_v against_o his_o opposer_n and_o shield_n myself_o by_o the_o word_n of_o solomon_n the_o woe_n be_v pronounce_v without_o good_a cause_n or_o the_o curse_n cause_n less_o shall_v not_o come_v chapter_n four_o page_n 26._o mr._n w._n say_v a_o man_n may_v be_v true_o say_v to_o know_v god_n i_o reply_v if_o he_o thereby_o mean_a the_o know_n of_o god_n be_v or_o quod_fw-la sit_fw-la deus_fw-la i_o grant_v it_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v it_o of_o the_o quid_fw-la sit_fw-la deus_fw-la or_o that_o man_n know_v what_o manner_n of_o be_v god_n be_v i_o then_o deny_v it_o he_o think_v if_o he_o can_v describe_v the_o property_n or_o attribute_n of_o a_o soul_n from_o which_o we_o feel_v the_o operition_n of_o life_n spring_n in_o we_o he_o shall_v thereby_o give_v we_o sufficient_o to_o know_v what_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v i_o reply_v that_o man_n ascribe_v attribute_n and_o property_n to_o god_n upon_o the_o certainty_n or_o knowledge_n that_o they_o have_v or_o may_v have_v from_o divers_a clear_a topic_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o be_v as_o god_n in_o the_o world_n but_o the_o like_a manner_n of_o proceed_v will_v not_o serve_v to_o prove_v the_o be_v of_o such_o a_o soul_n in_o the_o world_n as_o he_o describe_v and_o therefore_o i_o do_v require_v of_o he_o or_o any_o other_o who_o undertake_v this_o province_n first_o to_o prove_v that_o real_o and_o true_o there_o be_v such_o a_o sort_n of_o soul_n in_o the_o humane_a person_n as_o he_o pretend_v and_o if_o that_o be_v not_o first_o do_v they_o can_v but_o ascribe_v what_o attribute_n and_o property_n they_o please_v to_o they_o know_v not_o what_o or_o to_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o they_o can_v prove_v to_o have_v any_o be_v at_o all_o which_o be_v choir_n otherwise_o in_o the_o case_n put_v by_o he_o before_o concern_v god_n p._n 27._o mr._n w._n say_v the_o soul_n be_v not_o the_o breath_n of_o man._n thereby_o it_o seem_v intend_v that_o the_o word_n breath_n be_v not_o equipollent_a to_o the_o word_n soul_n of_o man_n and_o this_o i_o grant_v he_o that_o the_o breath_n of_o man_n be_v not_o his_o soul_n because_o i_o conceive_v there_o go_v more_o part_n to_o make_v up_o the_o soul_n or_o spirit_n of_o man_n life_n the_o five_o inference_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o draw_v from_o the_o soul_n be_v be_v the_o breath_n i_o pass_v over_o as_o not_o great_o material_a p._n 28._o mr._n w._n say_v second_o that_o as_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v not_o the_o breath_n so_o it_o be_v not_o the_o blood_n and_o then_o infer_v that_o if_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n all_o the_o food_n it_o have_v to_o live_v upon_o be_v the_o bread_n that_o perish_v i_o reply_v that_o all_o the_o food_n that_o man_n have_v to_o live_v upon_o naturaly_n be_v the_o bread_n that_o perish_v or_o be_v the_o nourishment_n which_o he_o due_o obtain_v to_o that_o purpose_n and_o thereby_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o his_o life_n daily_o support_v and_o upon_o the_o failure_n or_o not_o obtain_v thereof_o the_o man_n must_v languish_v consume_v and_o die_v and_o he_o and_o his_o spirit_n of_o life_n or_o soul_n go_v out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v extinct_a together_o further_o i_o conceive_v the_o man_n his_o spirit_n of_o life_n or_o soul_n have_v no_o other_o natural_a nourishment_n but_o viand_n of_o the_o kind_a beforementioned_a his_o follow_a expression_n seem_v to_o be_v altogether_o figurative_a he_o offer_v that_o if_o blood_n be_v the_o humane_a soul_n lecture_n out_o of_o galen_n and_o hypocrates_n will_v be_v more_o proper_a to_o purge_v away_o sin_n and_o bring_v soul_n to_o christ_n than_o sermon_n out_o of_o the_o bible_n here_o i_o suppose_v by_o soul_n he_o intend_v person_n or_o beg_v the_o question_n now_o in_o dispute_n between_o we_o see_v he_o well_o know_v i_o give_v no_o credit_n to_o the_o be_v of_o such_o a_o soul_n as_o he_o very_o positive_o assert_n and_o this_o be_v premise_v i_o say_v that_o purify_n and_o purge_v the_o blood_n may_v very_o much_o help_v and_o better_v the_o humane_a understanding_n and_o sermon_n out_o of_o the_o bible_n may_v be_v very_o good_a help_n and_o direction_n to_o the_o man_n in_o the_o government_n of_o his_o affection_n and_o the_o perform_n of_o his_o duty_n to_o god_n p._n 29._o mr._n w._n argue_v and_o say_v if_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o blood_n then_o that_o a_o man_n of_o sixty_o year_n of_o age_n have_v not_o the_o same_o soul_n he_o have_v at_o fifteen_o and_o then_o how_o can_v you_o think_v this_o old_a man_n can_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o youth_n i_o reply_v that_o a_o man_n soul_n be_v always_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o kind_a and_o though_o the_o material_a part_n of_o it_o do_v not_o always_o remain_v the_o same_o yet_o the_o man_n remain_v always_o the_o same_o person_n from_o four_o to_o fourscore_o and_o liable_a to_o answer_v for_o the_o fault_n which_o he_o have_v long_o before_o commit_v then_o he_o tell_v i_o that_o which_o i_o still_o profess_v not_o to_o believe_v though_o he_o do_v tell_v it_o i_o that_o the_o soul_n be_v of_o a_o different_a nature_n from_o the_o body_n and_o do_v neither_o grow_v with_o it_o in_o youth_n nor_o decay_n with_o it_o in_o age_n but_o remain_v in_o one_o same_o state_n and_o power_n during_o all_o the_o state_n of_o our_o life_n p._n 30._o he_o pretend_v to_o prove_v this_o by_o a_o similitude_n which_o i_o think_v to_o be_v foreign_a to_o our_o question_n and_o add_v nothing_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o assertion_n and_o the_o like_a i_o think_v may_v be_v say_v of_o his_o let_v of_o sheep_n and_o man_n blood_n into_o one_o another_o reciprocal_o and_o therefore_o i_o pass_v they_o both_o over_o p._n 31._o he_o say_v further_a that_o as_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v neither_o his_o breath_n nor_o blood_n so_o it_o be_v not_o god_n or_o any_o part_n of_o his_o divine_a essence_n in_o all_o which_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o agree_v with_o he_o have_v before_o declare_v and_o describe_v what_o manner_n of_o thing_n i_o think_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n to_o be_v and_o that_o in_o its_o cohabitation_n with_o the_o body_n it_o partake_v of_o growth_n and_o decay_n health_n and_o sickness_n strength_n and_o weakness_n joy_n and_o sorrow_n and_o receive_v in_o the_o end_n a_o extinguishment_n at_o the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n or_o that_o extinguishment_n itself_o be_v death_n mr._n w._n say_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v guilty_a of_o inadvertency_n rashness_n folly_n i_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o this_o expression_n but_o if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o person_n or_o the_o man_n be_v subject_a to_o these_o infirmity_n i_o shall_v soon_o have_v agree_v with_o he_o in_o that_o because_o i_o have_v often_o say_v i_o have_v no_o conception_n of_o a_o man_n without_o a_o soul_n or_o of_o a_o soul_n without_o a_o man_n but_o think_v that_o to_o act_v or_o suffer_v any_o thing_n they_o must_v be_v both_o together_o and_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o intelligent_a world_n whether_o by_o such_o experience_n as_o man_n can_v attain_v therein_o they_o do_v not_o find_v it_o so_o p._n 32._o mr_n w._n say_v the_o soul_n be_v a_o spirit_n create_v of_o god_n and_o endue_v with_o sense_n and_o reason_n and_o a_o power_n of_o actuate_a a_o humane_a body_n by_o vital_a union_n therewith_o p._n 33._o for_o the_o prove_v of_o a_o spirit_n to_o be_v a_o substance_n and_o that_o a_o humane_a soul_n be_v such_o a_o substance_n he_o refer_v his_o reader_n to_o all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v or_o shall_v say_v to_o prove_v the_o soul_n be_v a_o be_v independent_a on_o the_o body_n i_o reply_v that_o as_o far_o as_o i_o be_o able_a to_o judge_v all_o that_o he_o have_v hitherto_o say_v seem_v very_o insufficient_a for_o that_o purpose_n and_o what_o he_o will_v or_o can_v show_v to_o persuade_v the_o belief_n of_o that_o opinion_n time_n must_v show_v p._n 34._o he_o say_v we_o feel_v in_o our_o
and_o bring_v i_o into_o captivity_n to_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n in_o my_o member_n in_o this_o text_n st._n paul_n as_o i_o conceive_v declare_v the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o person_n and_o say_v that_o he_o in_o his_o mind_n or_o rational_a faculty_n be_v convince_v that_o such_o action_n be_v good_a and_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v they_o and_o therefore_o have_v a_o will_n to_o do_v they_o but_o that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n there_o be_v a_o law_n of_o sin_n in_o his_o member_n which_o withstand_v the_o good_a inclination_n and_o will_n of_o his_o rational_a faculty_n and_o against_o the_o will_n and_o power_n of_o his_o rational_a faculty_n bring_v he_o into_o captivity_n to_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n in_o his_o member_n if_o i_o may_v paraphrase_n this_o text_n i_o will_v do_v it_o thus_o our_o apostle_n be_v convince_v in_o his_o understanding_n that_o such_o action_n be_v good_a and_o aught_o by_o he_o to_o be_v do_v and_o therefore_o he_o have_v a_o will_n to_o do_v they_o but_o his_o sensual_a affection_n and_o lust_n strong_o oppose_v the_o performance_n thereof_o and_o have_v such_o power_n over_o the_o person_n as_o to_o prevail_v against_o the_o dictate_v of_o his_o reason_n and_o the_o inclination_n and_o bend_v of_o his_o will_n and_o bring_v he_o under_o such_o a_o submission_n to_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n as_o he_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v do_v that_o which_o his_o reason_n tell_v he_o be_v his_o duty_n to_o do_v but_o bring_v he_o under_o such_o a_o state_n of_o captivity_n to_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n as_o to_o make_v he_o do_v that_o which_o in_o his_o mind_n he_o condemn_v and_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o own_o understanding_n the_o dictate_v of_o his_o reason_n and_o the_o bend_v of_o his_o will_n and_o the_o course_n of_o proceed_v deliver_v by_o st._n paul_n in_o this_o text_n be_v undeniable_o verify_v by_o the_o daily_a experience_n of_o man_n and_o with_o so_o much_o advantage_n on_o the_o side_n of_o our_o sensual_a affection_n that_o where_o we_o find_v one_o man_n guide_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o dictate_v of_o his_o rational_a mind_n we_o may_v find_v perhaps_o a_o hundred_o who_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v hurry_v by_o the_o bent_n of_o their_o affection_n and_o lust_n into_o such_o action_n and_o practice_n as_o their_o own_o understanding_n and_o reason_n disapprove_v and_o condemn_v and_o sometime_o seek_v to_o resist_v though_o more_o often_o in_o vain_a than_o otherways_o so_o as_o we_o may_v say_v of_o these_o two_o faculty_n in_o man_n as_o man_n use_v to_o do_v of_o presumption_n and_o despair_n the_o reasonable_a faculty_n of_o man_n govern_v its_o thousand_o and_o the_o sensual_a affection_n their_o ten_o thousand_o and_o i_o think_v it_o be_v make_v appear_v by_o this_o argument_n that_o the_o power_n of_o reason_n in_o man_n be_v neither_o absolute_a nor_o monarchical_a but_o rather_o be_v a_o power_n coordinate_a with_o that_o of_o the_o affection_n and_o passion_n and_o general_o so_o unsuccessful_a in_o its_o contest_v with_o they_o for_o government_n that_o where_o one_o man_n be_v true_o govern_v by_o the_o dictate_v of_o his_o reason_n perhaps_o a_o hundred_o be_v hurry_v and_o let_v away_o by_o the_o attempt_v and_o overrule_a power_n of_o their_o affection_n and_o passion_n against_o the_o clear_a dictate_v and_o often_o against_o the_o will_n or_o rational_a desire_n of_o the_o person_n and_o i_o think_v this_o prove_v what_o have_v before_o be_v say_v that_o the_o regiment_n of_o reason_n in_o man_n be_v not_o monarchical_a but_o coordinate_a and_o swasive_a only_o it_o be_v able_a to_o persuade_v powerful_o but_o not_o to_o compel_v obedience_n to_o its_o direction_n and_o therefore_o i_o conceive_v mr._n w._n be_v mistake_v when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o power_n or_o regiment_n of_o reason_n in_o man_n be_v both_o monarchical_a and_o absolute_a p._n 35._o he_o discourse_v much_o concern_v the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o a_o spirit_n and_o the_o life_n of_o it_o among_o which_o there_o be_v saying_n which_o i_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v nor_o do_v all_o his_o discourse_n make_v i_o understand_v what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n a_o thing_n which_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o conside_fw-la himself_o do_v not_o know_v and_o because_o i_o think_v it_o give_v little_a light_n in_o our_o present_a question_n it_o shall_v here_o be_v pass_v over_o p._n 36._o he_o pretend_v here_o that_o the_o soul_n have_v life_n in_o herself_o as_o a_o spirit_n before_o he_o have_v prove_v to_o my_o understanding_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o soul_n in_o man_n i_o think_v it_o need_v no_o prove_v that_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o neither_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v accident_n adjunct_n or_o attribute_n and_o the_o be_v of_o his_o sort_n of_o soul_n which_o be_v neither_o grant_v nor_o prove_v can_v be_v conceive_v to_o have_v life_n in_o itself_o mr._n w._n say_v three_o that_o a_o spirit_n have_v a_o power_n of_o penetrate_v or_o glide_v through_o the_o hard_a solid_a body_n of_o marble_n or_o iron_n without_o find_v or_o make_v any_o cleft_n chink_n or_o cranny_n therein_o i_o doubt_v he_o deliver_v in_o these_o word_n that_o which_o he_o do_v not_o know_v to_o be_v true_a or_o be_v otherways_o able_a to_o prove_v he_o deliver_v other_o thing_n in_o this_o place_n concern_v spirit_n which_o i_o think_v other_o man_n be_v not_o resolve_v of_o p._n 37._o he_o say_v the_o jew_n can_v not_o keep_v peter_n in_o such_o a_o prison_n as_o the_o angel_n which_o deliver_v he_o can_v not_o penetrate_v whereas_o the_o text_n do_v not_o declare_v whether_o the_o angel_n come_v into_o the_o prison_n through_o the_o wall_n or_o by_o open_v the_o door_n but_o i_o count_v it_o certain_a that_o the_o door_n be_v open_v for_o peter_n to_o go_v out_o and_o therefore_o likely_a may_v so_o be_v at_o the_o come_n in_o of_o the_o angel_n also_o and_o as_o the_o iron-gate_n be_v that_o lead_v they_o into_o the_o city_n he_o add_v the_o soul_n of_o a_o man_n be_v true_o a_o spirit_n as_o a_o angel_n be_v how_o true_o be_v now_o in_o dispute_n he_o say_v the_o soul_n manifest_v her_o presence_n more_o eminent_o in_o the_o brain_n than_o in_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o body_n and_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o rational_a faculty_n be_v not_o only_o more_o eminent_o in_o the_o head_n and_o brain_n than_o in_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o body_n but_o that_o it_o reside_v and_o act_n in_o the_o head_n only_o without_o be_v communicate_v to_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o body_n because_o all_o the_o organ_n of_o understanding_n and_o reason_n be_v by_o god_n the_o creator_n place_v only_o in_o the_o head_n without_o any_o other_o member_n have_v a_o share_n therein_o p._n 38._o he_o raise_v a_o dispute_n whether_o light_n be_v a_o body_n and_o compare_v it_o to_o the_o penetration_n of_o a_o spirit_n but_o i_o pass_v it_o over_o as_o little_a pertinent_a to_o our_o present_a question_n mr._n w._n further_o say_v that_o a_o spirit_n and_o his_o sort_n of_o soul_n be_v indivisible_a or_o indiscerptible_a not_o subject_a to_o blow_v or_o wound_n nor_o to_o be_v consume_v by_o the_o fierce_a fire_n i_o think_v he_o shall_v here_o have_v express_v how_o it_o can_v be_v torment_v by_o fire_n and_o yet_o have_v no_o part_n or_o particle_n of_o it_o consume_v by_o the_o fervent_a heat_n or_o by_o the_o violent_a pain_n and_o torment_v which_o it_o suffer_v p._n 39_o he_o quote_v st._n matthew_n be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o strong_a refuge_n of_o his_o opinion_n refer_v here_o by_o i_o to_o a_o future_a answer_n p._n 40._o mr._n w._n say_v his_o sort_n of_o soul_n must_v either_o be_v god_n or_o a_o creature_n and_o thereupon_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o and_o to_o pretend_v as_o i_o have_v often_o before_o do_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n or_o sort_n of_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v endue_v either_o with_o sense_n or_o reason_n as_o by_o say_v he_o will_v persuade_v we_o it_o be_v he_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o proper_a and_o immediate_a seat_n of_o sense_n and_o i_o reply_v as_o i_o have_v often_o before_o it_o be_v not_o the_o soul_n but_o the_o person_n that_o be_v so_o p._n 41._o he_o say_v the_o soul_n be_v endue_v with_o reason_n and_o understanding_n i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o soul_n alone_o but_o the_o man_n that_o be_v so_o he_o say_v reason_n be_v the_o most_o noble_a faculty_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n by_o mean_n of_o which_o we_o men_n know_v god_n and_o hold_v a_o communion_n with_o he_o and_o do_v
divers_a other_o great_a thing_n here_o name_v and_o in_o these_o say_n i_o be_o at_o agreement_n with_o he_o without_o believe_v these_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o soul_n alone_o but_o by_o the_o person_n in_o composito_n chief_o act_v therein_o by_o the_o faculty_n and_o power_n of_o its_o reason_n here_o he_o quote_v a_o author_n that_o say_v homo_fw-la solus_fw-la est_fw-la animus_n corpus_fw-la autem_fw-la hominis_fw-la opus_fw-la &_o instrumentum_fw-la &_o animus_n intelligentiam_fw-la exercet_fw-la sine_fw-la ullo_fw-la corporis_fw-la instrumento_fw-la in_o english_a thus_o the_o soul_n only_o be_v the_o man_n and_o the_o body_n be_v but_o the_o soul_n organ_n or_o instrument_n and_o the_o soul_n can_v exercise_v its_o faculty_n of_o understanding_n without_o any_o assistance_n of_o the_o bodily_a organ_n but_o this_o quotation_n prove_v no_o more_o to_o i_o than_o that_o there_o be_v other_o man_n who_o be_v of_o mr._n w_n opinion_n and_o think_v as_o he_o do_v which_o there_o be_v no_o need_n at_o all_o to_o prove_v because_o i_o stand_v convince_v that_o the_o world_n of_o man_n in_o general_n be_v so_o but_o let_v mr._n w._n prove_v that_o those_o word_n of_o his_o author_n be_v true_a and_o then_o erit_fw-la mihi_fw-la magnus_fw-la apollo_n i_o will_v give_v up_o the_o cudgel_n to_o he_o and_o confess_v he_o victorious_a in_o this_o dispute_n for_o i_o be_o agree_v with_o aristotle_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la that_o if_o the_o soul_n ever_o be_v know_v to_o do_v or_o can_v be_v prove_v able_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n without_o assistance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o its_o organ_n such_o proof_n will_v be_v evidence_n enough_o to_o convince_v consider_v person_n that_o she_o have_v a_o nature_n and_o subsistence_n of_o her_o own_o wherein_o she_o can_v act_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n but_o of_o this_o power_n i_o find_v no_o more_o proof_n but_o the_o say_v recite_v in_o this_o quotation_n p._n 42._o mr._n w._n say_v if_o the_o soul_n will_v the_o foot_n walk_v the_o hands_z work_n and_o so_o for_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o eye_n and_o other_o like_a thing_n all_o which_o i_o pass_v as_o before_o for_o a_o mistake_n mendable_a by_o say_v if_o the_o man_n will_v the_o foot_n walk_v and_o the_o hand_n work_v and_o the_o like_a further_o in_o his_o five_o he_o say_v the_o soul_n be_v vital_o unite_v with_o the_o body_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o union_n enlivens_fw-la and_o act_v it_o thereunto_o i_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n or_o the_o body_n make_v but_o one_o person_n who_o whilst_o he_o live_v move_v direct_v and_o act_n himself_o and_o use_v his_o intellective_a voluntary_a and_o memorative_a power_n and_o faculty_n with_o full_a liberty_n according_a to_o his_o own_o like_n and_o pleasure_n natural_o he_o speak_v here_o of_o a_o vital_a union_n between_o the_o body_n and_o the_o soul_n which_o expression_n i_o do_v not_o approve_v because_o they_o both_o together_o make_v but_o one_o person_n as_o two_o ingredient_n which_o make_v but_o one_o compositum_fw-la not_o as_o two_o different_a thing_n that_o be_v unite_v and_o join_v together_o but_o as_o ingredient_n may_v be_v total_o mix_v and_o a_o new_a product_n arise_v out_o of_o they_o all_o so_o as_o that_o if_o any_o of_o they_o be_v want_v in_o the_o composition_n the_o product_n can_v true_o be_v the_o same_o it_o be_v before_o p._n 43._o he_o say_v that_o to_o tell_v you_o what_o the_o soul_n be_v so_o as_o to_o make_v it_o a_o intelligible_a notion_n be_v not_o so_o impossible_a a_o thing_n as_o some_o have_v conceive_v it_o to_o be_v thereto_o i_o say_v that_o by_o such_o description_n as_o he_o have_v before_o make_v of_o the_o soul_n and_o all_o that_o he_o have_v hitherto_o speak_v thereof_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o understand_v or_o believe_v any_o more_o coneern_v his_o sort_n of_o soul_n than_o i_o do_v before_o i_o begin_v to_o peruse_v his_o treatise_n the_o repetition_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o say_v he_o have_v perform_v i_o pass_v over_o as_o find_v no_o prove_v force_n among_o they_o i_o find_v no_o more_o chapter_n in_o this_o treatise_n than_o those_o four_o which_o have_v before_o be_v examine_v but_o that_o here_o mr._n w._n begin_v to_o alter_v his_o method_n and_o to_o divide_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o treatise_n by_o argument_n to_o the_o number_n of_o eighteen_o of_o which_o he_o treat_v distinct_o and_o several_o in_o his_o follow_a discourse_n and_o i_o purpose_n to_o follow_v he_o therein_o and_o use_v the_o same_o method_n in_o my_o observation_n the_o first_o argument_n page_n 44._o mr._n w._n say_v that_o upon_o god_n breathe_v into_o adam_n he_o be_v in_o the_o text_n call_v a_o liveng_n soul_n a_o denomination_n take_v from_o the_o more_o excellent_a part_n of_o man_n his_o soul_n this_o expression_n seem_v to_o agree_v with_o what_o i_o have_v former_o speak_v that_o here_o the_o word_n a_o live_a soul_n signify_v and_o intend_v a_o live_a person_n put_v the_o more_o noble_a part_n or_o ingredient_n to_o signify_v the_o whole_a person_n so_o as_o it_o pass_v in_o his_o judgement_n for_o a_o figurative_a expression_n p._n 46._o mr._n w._n say_v when_o god_n breathe_v which_o he_o proper_o do_v not_o there_o be_v something_o else_o mean_v which_o can_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o special_a act_n of_o creation_n by_o which_o he_o make_v the_o spirit_n or_o breath_n of_o life_n which_o he_o breathe_v into_o man._n i_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o text_n there_o be_v no_o express_a mention_n of_o a_o creation_n either_o of_o breath_n or_o spirit_n p._n 47._o he_o say_v by_o the_o breath_n of_o god_n be_v mean_v that_o act_n of_o divine_a power_n by_o which_o god_n make_v man_n and_o give_v life_n to_o he_o i_o be_o not_o willing_a to_o differ_v from_o mr._n w._n and_o therefore_o agree_v to_o this_o expression_n he_o quote_v ps_n 33.6_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o heaven_n make_v and_o all_o the_o host_n of_o they_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n the_o late_a of_o they_o allude_v to_o god_n power_n show_v in_o the_o creation_n of_o adam_n but_o thence_o he_o infer_v this_o breathe_v into_o adam_n must_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o create_v somewhat_o but_o i_o find_v no_o strength_n at_o all_o in_o this_o inference_n nor_o that_o it_o prove_v with_o any_o strength_n of_o cohersion_n the_o creation_n of_o any_o thing_n save_o adam_n body_n at_o the_o time_n when_o god_n make_v man_n and_o i_o grant_v that_o then_o whatsoever_o be_v create_v beside_o his_o body_n be_v a_o creature_n but_o i_o do_v not_o herein_o find_v any_o manner_n of_o proof_n that_o god_n then_o create_v a_o soul_n for_o adam_n here_o mr._n w._n repeat_v his_o former_a argument_n concern_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n which_o our_o translator_n have_v render_v by_o the_o term_n of_o breath_n and_o say_v that_o the_o same_o word_n do_v also_o sometime_o signify_v spirit_n to_o this_o i_o say_v that_o our_o translator_n think_v it_o not_o fit_a to_o render_v it_o by_o the_o term_n of_o spirit_n in_o this_o place_n and_o i_o value_v their_o judgement_n before_o those_o of_o mr._n w._n or_o mr._n buxtorf_n and_o therefore_o take_v that_o word_n to_o signify_v most_o proper_o in_o this_o place_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n p._n 48._o he_o pretend_v the_o word_n shall_v run_v thus_o god_n breathe_v or_o create_v in_o man_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n or_o that_o spirit_n or_o soul_n of_o life_n and_o in_o truth_n if_o the_o word_n have_v run_v so_o they_o will_v have_v run_v much_o better_a for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o opinion_n than_o now_o they_o do_v but_o i_o do_v not_o perceive_v by_o what_o authority_n he_o take_v upon_o he_o so_o to_o correct_v or_o as_o some_o may_v take_v it_o corrupt_v the_o text._n the_o breathe_v which_o he_o say_v discover_v a_o new_a create_v spirit_n to_o be_v there_o i_o say_v detect_v only_o a_o spirit_n of_o life_n to_o be_v there_o which_o be_v tind_v and_o kindle_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o humour_n then_o fit_v and_o ready_a for_o that_o operation_n by_o the_o moderate_a fan_v of_o that_o breath_n which_o god_n or_o his_o agent_n then_o breathe_v into_o adam_n nostril_n and_o this_o be_v the_o humane_a spirit_n of_o life_n tind_v and_o kindle_v by_o that_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o from_o that_o time_n to_o this_o time_n it_o be_v and_o must_v be_v continual_o keep_v flame_v or_o glow_v by_o the_o constant_a respiration_n and_o fan_v of_o this_o breath_n by_o want_n of_o which_o this_o flame_n will_v be_v extinguish_v in_o a_o short_a time_n or_o a_o very_a few_o moment_n of_o it_o
go_v thy_o way_n and_o as_o thou_o have_v believe_v so_o be_v it_o do_v unto_o thou_o st._n luke_n relate_v it_o thus_o this_o centurion_n servant_n be_v ready_a to_o die_v and_o when_o he_o hear_v of_o jesus_n he_o send_v unto_o he_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o jew_n beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v come_v and_o heal_v his_o servant_n and_o they_o come_v to_o jesus_n desire_v he_o to_o do_v this_o kindness_n for_o the_o captain_n because_o he_o be_v a_o worthy_a person_n and_o a_o lover_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o jesus_n go_v with_o they_o towards_o the_o captain_n house_n and_o when_o he_o be_v not_o far_o from_o thence_o the_o centurion_n send_v friend_n to_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o lord_n trouble_v not_o thyself_o for_o i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o shall_v enter_v under_o my_o roof_n wherefore_o neither_o thought_n i_o myself_o worthy_a to_o come_v unto_o thou_o but_o say_v in_o a_o word_n and_o my_o servant_n shall_v be_v heal_v and_o jesus_n thereupon_o turn_v he_o about_o and_o discourse_v with_o those_o that_o follow_v he_o and_o they_o that_o be_v send_v return_v to_o the_o house_n find_v the_o servant_n whole_a that_o have_v be_v sick_a upon_o read_v these_o two_o relation_n i_o think_v it_o plain_o appear_v that_o either_o this_o centurion_n come_v personal_o to_o our_o lord_n to_o request_v his_o servant_n cure_n or_o he_o do_v not_o come_v personal_o to_o christ_n for_o that_o purpose_n but_o send_v the_o elder_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o request_v that_o favour_n upon_o his_o behalf_n without_o that_o himself_o come_v either_o to_o sight_n or_o speech_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o that_o occasion_n i_o find_v no_o ground_n or_o reasonable_a guess_n which_o of_o our_o text_n deliver_v the_o absolute_a truth_n in_o this_o circumstance_n of_o the_o fact_n which_o they_o relate_v but_o from_o this_o variance_n and_o the_o other_o instance_n before_o recount_v i_o think_v it_o may_v reasonable_o be_v collect_v that_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o take_v and_o perhaps_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v every_o say_v or_o sentence_n which_o they_o find_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o irrefragable_a truth_n and_o the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n and_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o apply_v this_o tenet_n to_o the_o say_n now_o in_o dispute_n with_o mr._n w._n viz._n be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n and_o have_v no_o more_o that_o they_o can_v do_v we_o find_v a_o apparent_a variance_n between_o these_o two_o saying_n and_o that_o the_o word_n of_o st._n luke_n be_v adequate_a and_o answerable_a to_o the_o intent_n of_o our_o lord_n doctrine_n in_o this_o place_n whereas_o those_o of_o st._n matthew_n have_v a_o double_a aspect_n and_o look_v as_o it_o be_v two_o way_n for_o one_o way_n it_o insinuate_v that_o persecutor_n can_v do_v no_o more_o harm_n after_o they_o have_v kill_v another_o way_n it_o seem_v next_o to_o a_o assertion_n that_o man_n soul_n live_v and_o subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o their_o body_n i_o do_v not_o by_o the_o context_n or_o any_o other_o way_n conceive_v that_o our_o lord_n do_v speak_v or_o have_v any_o intent_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o state_n of_o man_n after_o death_n in_o this_o doctrine_n whence_o the_o word_n be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n in_o that_o prospect_n of_o intend_v to_o teach_v the_o state_n of_o man_n after_o death_n seem_v quite_o beside_o our_o lord_n mean_v in_o this_o doctrine_n and_o if_o not_o quite_o out_o of_o it_o yet_o very_o plain_o collateral_a to_o it_o and_o yet_o from_o this_o side-wind_n the_o maintainer_n of_o separate_a subsistence_n draw_v the_o strong_a proof_n which_o they_o can_v find_v for_o maintain_v their_o opinion_n of_o the_o separate_a subsistence_n i_o think_v that_o upon_o perusal_n of_o this_o argument_n it_o will_v appear_v the_o strength_n of_o this_o proof_n be_v much_o weaken_a and_o abate_v and_o will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v of_o much_o less_o force_n than_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v at_o the_o first_o read_v or_o hear_v thereof_o and_o in_o this_o state_n of_o debilitation_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o prosecute_v my_o observation_n upon_o mr._n w_n page_n as_o i_o do_v before_o p._n 64_o mr._n w._n pretend_v to_o take_v the_o dispute_v word_n as_o comment_n one_o upon_o another_o and_o say_v that_o by_o construction_n they_o may_v be_v make_v to_o intend_v one_o thing_n and_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o grant_v that_o by_o construction_n they_o may_v both_o of_o they_o be_v make_v to_o serve_v the_o mean_v of_o our_o lord_n in_o this_o doctrine_n but_o then_o in_o our_o collateral_a point_n which_o st._n luke_n do_v not_o meddle_v with_o there_o be_v a_o very_a great_a variance_n between_o these_o two_o expression_n for_o that_o the_o one_o prove_v strong_o the_o soul_n be_v separate_a subsistence_n and_o the_o other_o prove_v it_o not_o nor_o meddle_v with_o it_o at_o all_o which_o prove_v that_o our_o lord_n doctrine_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o speak_v of_o that_o point_n in_o this_o place_n and_o therefore_o our_o question_n thereupon_o be_v in_o what_o word_n our_o lord_n deliver_v this_o doctrine_n and_o the_o conclusion_n be_v that_o if_o he_o deliver_v this_o doctrine_n in_o the_o word_n of_o st._n matthew_n than_o they_o be_v a_o strong_a proof_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n but_o if_o his_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v in_o the_o word_n of_o st._n luke_n then_o there_o be_v no_o proof_n at_o all_o in_o it_o of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n and_o i_o have_v before_o enough_o argue_v on_o the_o side_n of_o st._n luke_n and_o for_o the_o probability_n that_o his_o text_n set_v forth_o to_o we_o the_o very_a word_n wherein_o our_o lord_n deliver_v this_o doctrine_n mr._n w._n confess_v that_o luke_n express_v less_o than_o matthew_n but_o say_v he_o never_o mean_v less_o which_o i_o think_v intend_v that_o the_o mean_v of_o luke_n in_o his_o text_n be_v that_o those_o who_o kill_v the_o body_n be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n which_o mean_v do_v not_o at_o all_o appear_v in_o the_o word_n of_o luke_n text_n which_o do_v not_o say_v so_o and_o how_o then_o mr._n w._n shall_v come_v to_o know_v that_o he_o mean_v so_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v and_o therefore_o i_o reject_v this_o gloss_n upon_o that_o text_n as_o mr._n w'_v own_o invention_n or_o fiction_n the_o five_o argument_n pag._n 65._o mr._n w._n raise_v a_o argument_n for_o the_o soul_n be_v separate_a subsistence_n from_o the_o appear_v of_o moses_n and_o elias_n and_o discourse_v with_o our_o lord_n upon_o mount_n tabor_n and_o say_v that_o moses_n can_v not_o appear_v there_o in_o his_o person_n soul_n and_o body_n because_o deut._n 34.6_o say_v moses_n die_v in_o the_o land_n of_o moab_n and_o he_o the_o lord_n bury_v he_o in_o a_o valley_n there_o over-against_o beth-peor_n but_o no_o man_n know_v of_o his_o sepulchre_n unto_o this_o day_n p_o 66._o mr._n w._n discourse_v upon_o this_o text_n say_v that_o moses_n appear_v at_o mount_n tabor_n must_v be_v either_o alive_a in_o spirit_n only_o or_o else_o his_o body_n be_v raise_v add_v i_o know_v that_o some_o conjecture_n that_o his_o body_n be_v raise_v but_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o conjecture_n from_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o he_o think_v it_o more_o likely_a that_o moses_n appear_v in_o spirit_n only_o intend_v i_o suppose_v in_o his_o soul_n subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n after_o death_n which_o i_o think_v to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o conjecture_n which_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v by_o text_n of_o scripture_n any_o more_o than_o the_o former_a conjecture_n can_v be_v so_o prove_v and_o to_o these_o two_o conjecture_n i_o pretend_v to_o add_v a_o three_o viz._n that_o moses_n may_v not_o have_v die_v in_o the_o mount_n but_o may_v be_v translate_v or_o transport_v to_o heaven_n in_o person_n as_o enoch_n and_o elias_n have_v before_o be_v which_o i_o offer_v to_o prove_v by_o his_o appear_v with_o elias_n at_o mount_n taber_n it_o seem_v they_o appear_v both_o after_o a_o like_a manner_n and_o the_o one_o as_o much_o in_o person_n as_o the_o other_o mr._n w._n grant_v that_o elias_n do_v appear_v in_o person_n and_o arguendo_fw-la a_o simili_fw-la it_o appear_v most_o likely_a that_o moses_n do_v so_o too_o as_o to_o the_o text_n which_o say_v moses_n die_v and_o be_v bury_v i_o think_v fit_a to_o consider_v by_o who_o this_o book_n of_o deuteronomy_n may_v be_v write_v and_o if_o the_o promise_v thereof_o may_v be_v write_v by_o moses_n or_o his_o direction_n yet_o this_o close_a passage_n of_o it_o about_o his_o own_o death_n and_o burial_n it_o seem_v can_v not_o be_v so_o it_o appear_v not_o from_o whence_o the_o opinion_n
other_o man_n may_v possible_o say_v have_v now_o confound_v and_o implicate_v the_o mean_v of_o this_o text_n by_o my_o exposition_n i_o be_o enough_o by_o that_o mean_v enable_v to_o prove_v thereby_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n which_o from_o the_o text_n itself_o without_o such_o handle_n of_o it_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o have_v do_v p._n 88_o he_o pretend_v to_o prove_v the_o soul_n not_o subject_a to_o death_n because_o nothing_o be_v so_o that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o power_n of_o death_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o believer_n be_v not_o so_o i_o look_v upon_o this_o as_o a_o vain_a sort_n of_o argument_n and_o beg_v of_o the_o question_n increase_v the_o bulk_n of_o his_o treatise_n but_o add_v no_o strength_n to_o his_o proof_n here_o again_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o term_n of_o she_o and_o she_o as_o if_o he_o have_v prove_v she_o a_o separate_o distinct_a thing_n from_o the_o man_n or_o person_n a_o thing_n neither_o grant_v to_o he_o nor_o prove_v by_o he_o p._n 89._o he_o say_v again_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o believer_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o death_n which_o be_v the_o very_a point_n in_o question_n and_o deny_v by_o his_o opposer_n p._n 90._o he_o pretend_v that_o by_o what_o he_o have_v say_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o law_n of_o death_n be_v execute_v only_o on_o the_o body_n of_o a_o believer_n i_o answer_v that_o to_o i_o apper_n no_o such_o thing_n but_o that_o the_o law_n of_o death_n be_v execute_v upon_o the_o person_n both_o of_o believer_n and_o unbeliever_n and_o that_o death_n pass_v upon_o all_o for_o that_o all_o have_v sin_v and_o do_v agree_v with_o he_o that_o not_o only_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v at_o the_o last_o day_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a person_n shall_v be_v so_o raise_v to_o appear_v in_o judgement_n before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o christ_n and_o withal_o i_o conceive_v that_o our_o author_n go_v far_o for_o argument_n to_o prove_v his_o tenet_n when_o he_o catch_v at_o and_o seem_v to_o rely_v upon_o such_o precarious_a construction_n as_o he_o have_v offer_v in_o this_o argument_n the_o ten_o argument_n page_n 90_o mr._n w._n quote_v in_o proof_n of_o his_o opinion_n 2_o cor._n 5_o 6_o therefore_o we_o be_v always_o confident_a know_v that_o while_o we_o be_v at_o home_n in_o the_o body_n we_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o lord_n we_o be_v confident_a i_o say_v and_o willing_a rather_o to_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o body_n and_o to_o be_v present_a with_o the_o lord_n p._n 91._o hereupon_o mr._n w._n with_o good_a reason_n place_n the_o difficulty_n in_o the_o meaning_n of_o st._n paul_n double_a expression_n of_o be_v in_o the_o body_n and_o absent_a from_o christ_n and_o be_v out_o of_o the_o body_n and_o present_a with_o christ_n and_o then_o say_v that_o when_o paul_n say_v we_o be_v confident_a that_o here_o by_o the_o we_o that_o be_v always_o confident_a he_o intend_v the_o soul_n or_o spirit_n of_o himself_o and_o the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o believe_a church_n and_o if_o this_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o our_o apostle_n in_o this_o case_n viz._n that_o here_o be_v intend_v the_o soul_n of_o he_o and_o his_o brethren_n which_o at_o death_n will_v be_v absent_a from_o their_o body_n and_o be_v present_a with_o the_o lord_n then_o say_v he_o it_o prove_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n separate_a and_o be_v immortal_a but_o the_o former_a say_v he_o be_v true_a therefore_o the_o late_a than_o he_o offer_v to_o prove_v that_o by_o the_o we_o who_o will_v be_v absent_a from_o the_o body_n the_o apostle_n intend_v the_o soul_n only_o of_o himself_o and_o other_o believer_n for_o what_o else_o be_v that_o of_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o body_n and_o present_a with_o the_o lord_n name_v the_o thing_n if_o you_o can_v for_o say_v he_o it_o can_v mean_v the_o body_n nor_o the_o whole_a person_n not_o the_o whole_a person_n for_o that_o the_o whole_a man_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v at_o home_o in_o one_o part_n of_o the_o man_n viz._n his_o body_n or_o absent_a from_o it_o for_o the_o whole_a of_o anything_o can_v be_v contain_v in_o a_o part_n of_o it_o p._n 93._o then_o mr._n w_n put_v a_o weak_a objection_n against_o himself_o and_o answer_v it_o upon_o this_o argument_n i_o agree_v with_o he_o that_o the_o difficulty_n lie_v in_o find_v out_o what_o st._n paul_n intend_v by_o the_o we_o that_o will_v be_v absent_a from_o the_o body_n and_o present_a with_o the_o lord_n whether_o it_o intend_v the_o soul_n only_o of_o the_o faithful_a or_o their_o whole_a person_n he_o say_v it_o can_v only_o intend_v man_n soul_n but_o i_o conceive_v that_o it_o intend_v their_o person_n and_o first_o i_o argue_v from_o the_o apostle_n term_n of_o expression_n and_o do_v think_v that_o if_o by_o the_o term_n we_o he_o only_o intend_a man_n soul_n he_o have_v very_o improper_o express_v such_o a_o mean_v for_o that_o if_o there_o be_v many_o person_n in_o a_o assembly_n or_o company_n and_o one_o of_o they_o speak_v for_o the_o rest_n say_z we_o decree_v or_o expect_v or_o desire_v such_o a_o thing_n how_o can_v it_o possible_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o speaker_n intend_v only_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o person_n do_v expect_v or_o desire_v and_o therefore_o if_o our_o apostle_n by_o his_o term_n we_o do_v intend_v only_o the_o soul_n of_o believer_n i_o conceive_v it_o will_v have_v be_v hard_o for_o man_n to_o have_v find_v out_o that_o mean_v without_o such_o a_o assistance_n and_o direction_n as_o mr._n w._n here_o offer_v they_o i_o think_v the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n we_o in_o such_o case_n be_v to_o denote_v the_o man_n or_o the_o person_n who_o be_v say_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n and_o not_o any_o one_o part_n or_o parcel_v of_o such_o person_n as_o it_o must_v do_v in_o this_o place_n if_o it_o intend_v only_o the_o soul_n of_o believer_n i_o take_v it_o for_o a_o old_a and_o good_a rule_n among_o expositor_n that_o they_o shall_v cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o the_o context_n of_o those_o place_n which_o they_o mean_v to_o expound_v that_o thereby_o they_o may_v discover_v the_o whole_a scheme_n or_o platform_n of_o the_o writer_n intention_n and_o then_o to_o employ_v their_o talon_n in_o draw_v all_o that_o the_o writer_n say_v to_o prove_v his_o mean_v or_o fortify_v his_o assertion_n and_o therefore_o i_o proceed_v to_o search_v what_o our_o apostle_n say_v in_o his_o next_o foregoing_a chapter_n concern_v this_o matter_n chap._n 4.10_o we_o be_v cast_v down_o but_o not_o destroy_v always_o bear_v about_o in_o the_o body_n the_o die_a of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n by_o body_n i_o think_v the_o whole_a person_n be_v here_o intend_a the_o text_n add_v that_o the_o life_n of_o jesus_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a in_o our_o body_n or_o person_n ver._n 14._o we_o know_v that_o he_o which_o raise_v up_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v raise_v up_o we_o also_o by_o jesus_n and_o shall_v present_v we_o with_o you_o ver._n 16._o though_o our_o outward_a man_n perish_v yet_o the_o inward_a man_n be_v renew_v day_n by_o day_n intend_v the_o whole_a man_n degenerate_v or_o regenerate_v chap._n 5.1_o we_o know_v that_o if_o our_o earthly_a house_n of_o this_o tabernacle_n be_v dissolve_v we_o have_v a_o building_n of_o god_n a_o house_n not_o make_v with_o hand_n eternal_a in_o the_o heaven_n for_o in_o this_o we_o groan_v earnest_o desire_v to_o be_v clothe_v upon_o with_o our_o house_n which_o be_v from_o heaven_n and_o we_o that_o be_v in_o this_o tabernacle_n do_v groan_v be_v burden_v not_o for_o that_o we_o will_v be_v unclothe_v but_o clothe_v upon_o that_o mortality_n may_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o life_n and_o we_o be_v always_o confident_a know_v that_o whilst_o we_o be_v at_o home_n in_o the_o body_n we_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o lord_n we_o be_v confident_a i_o say_v and_o willing_a rather_o to_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o body_n and_o present_a with_o the_o lord_n and_o we_o labour_v that_o whether_o present_a or_o absent_a we_o may_v be_v accept_v of_o he_o for_o we_o must_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n that_o every_o one_o may_v receive_v the_o thing_n do_v in_o his_o body_n according_a to_o that_o he_o have_v do_v whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o bad_a these_o quotation_n have_v be_v transcribe_v for_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o intent_n of_o our_o apostle_n in_o these_o text_n be_v to_o discover_v to_o his_o reader_n matter_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o last_o judgement_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o discourse_n he_o profess_v to_o
write_v this_o epistle_n because_o the_o apostle_n say_v there_o be_v thing_n in_o heaven_n reconcile_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o cross_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o heaven_n reconcile_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o cross_n except_o they_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o some_o holy_a man_n that_o go_v hence_o then_o he_o express_v a_o desire_n to_o know_v what_o man_n can_v say_v to_o this_o argument_n and_o therefore_o i_o say_v to_o it_o that_o by_o his_o own_o expression_n it_o appear_v he_o say_v he_o know_v not_o what_o for_o he_o say_v he_o know_v not_o that_o there_o be_v any_o other_o thing_n in_o heaven_n which_o need_v reconciliation_n to_o god_n by_o christ_n except_o man_n will_v take_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o depart_a person_n but_o if_o man_n will_v not_o accept_v of_o this_o mean_v than_o he_o know_v not_o what_o the_o apostle_n can_v mean_v by_o thing_n in_o heaven_n reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o christ_n which_o intend_v no_o more_o than_o that_o he_o do_v not_o otherways_o know_v what_o the_o thing_n in_o heaven_n reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o christ_n may_v mean_v which_o i_o take_v for_o a_o confession_n that_o he_o do_v not_o know_v what_o paul_n mean_v by_o these_o thing_n in_o heaven_n second_o i_o conceive_v he_o do_v not_o know_v that_o there_o be_v any_o soul_n in_o heaven_n because_o if_o he_o do_v he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o make_v such_o a_o demonstration_n or_o description_n of_o their_o be_v and_o of_o their_o be_v there_o as_o other_o man_n who_o be_v willing_a may_v be_v able_a to_o understand_v and_o conceive_v he_o have_v take_v pain_n to_o write_v this_o treatise_n and_o therein_o have_v already_o produce_v thirteen_o argument_n in_o proof_n of_o this_o tenet_n but_o very_o unsuccessful_o as_o those_o who_o peruse_v these_o observation_n will_v easy_o discover_v the_o peruser_n of_o this_o argument_n will_v i_o think_v easy_o find_v that_o mr._n w._n must_v have_v two_o thing_n grant_v he_o before_o he_o can_v pretend_v to_o prove_v any_o thing_n by_o this_o argument_n first_o that_o there_o be_v no_o thing_n in_o heaven_n which_o need_v reconciliation_n to_o god_n unless_o man_n will_v admit_v that_o humane_a soul_n be_v there_o and_o therefore_o second_o he_o will_v persuade_v man_n to_o admit_v of_o his_o position_n that_o there_o be_v soul_n in_o heaven_n but_o i_o think_v fit_a to_o reject_v both_o these_o proposal_n and_o say_v first_o that_o there_o may_v be_v other_o thing_n in_o heaven_n beside_o soul_n which_o may_v need_v a_o reconciliation_n to_o god_n by_o christ_n and_o second_o to_o conceive_v that_o possible_o or_o even_o probable_o there_o be_v not_o nor_o ever_o be_v any_o humane_a soul_n in_o heaven_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o place_n in_o the_o world_n except_o in_o their_o own_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a body_n here_o mr._n w._n put_v another_o slight_a objection_n against_o his_o own_o opinion_n and_o answer_v it_o p._n 102._o mr._n w._n demand_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n else_o in_o heaven_n beside_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n which_o need_v a_o reconciliation_n to_o god_n what_o be_v those_o thing_n i_o answer_v i_o do_v not_o know_v what_o those_o thing_n be_v and_o alike_o confession_n of_o his_o ignorance_n concern_v this_o subject_a will_v better_o have_v become_v mr._n w._n than_o his_o groundless_a guess_n at_o what_o be_v mean_v in_o this_o text_n by_o st._n paul_n expression_n of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o the_o supply_v his_o ignorance_n therein_o by_o a_o bold_a but_o erroneous_a guest_n that_o by_o thing_n in_o heaven_n st._n paul_n intend_v the_o separate_a soul_n of_o man_n of_o which_o the_o text_n make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o and_o his_o supposal_n that_o there_o be_v separate_a soul_n have_v no_o better_a foundation_n than_o his_o own_o supposal_n which_o have_v very_o little_a power_n to_o convince_v intelligent_a person_n that_o humane_a soul_n have_v any_o sort_n of_o subsistence_n in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n the_o fourteen_o argument_n page_n 102._o heb._n 12.23_o we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n make_v perfect_a mr._n w._n begin_v this_o argument_n with_o somewhat_o a_o long_a comparison_n between_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n which_o make_v little_a to_o our_o point_n and_o therefore_o i_o pass_v it_o over_o p._n 104._o mr._n w._n say_v as_o he_o be_v very_o apt_a to_o do_v that_o the_o soul_n or_o spirit_n of_o man_n be_v immortal_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o very_a great_a truth_n that_o they_o be_v immortal_a and_o add_v those_o soul_n which_o the_o gospel_n reveal_v to_o be_v alive_a out_o of_o their_o body_n be_v thereby_o prove_v to_o be_v immortal_a but_o the_o gospel_n reveal_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o just_a man_n be_v alive_a out_o of_o their_o body_n therefore_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v alive_a out_o of_o their_o body_n therefore_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v immortal_a mr._n w._n say_v the_o gospel_n reveal_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n be_v alive_a out_o of_o their_o body_n because_o the_o text_n say_v they_o be_v make_v perfect_a and_o there_o be_v no_o perfection_n in_o death_n p._n 105._o he_o say_v we_o have_v a_o right_n to_o the_o society_n of_o those_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n mude_v perfect_a which_o we_o shall_v have_v in_o possession_n when_o we_o depart_v hence_o but_o i_o find_v neither_o such_o word_n nor_o thing_n in_o his_o text_n viz._n that_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o that_o society_n when_o we_o depart_v hence_o so_o as_o i_o must_v repute_v it_o his_o own_o addition_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n which_o do_v not_o appoint_v the_o time_n for_o our_o come_n to_o that_o society_n i_o find_v mr._n w._n have_v only_o quote_v so_o much_o of_o this_o text_n as_o seem_v most_o to_o support_v his_o own_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o i_o intend_v to_o quote_v it_o somewhat_o more_o large_o heb._n 12.22_o you_o be_v come_v unto_o mount_n zion_n and_o to_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n or_o city_n of_o god_n to_o the_o company_n of_o angel_n to_o the_o general_a assembly_n and_o church_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v and_o to_o god_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o and_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n make_v perfect_a and_o to_o jesus_n the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n ver._n 25._o see_v that_o you_o refuse_v not_o he_o that_o speak_v who_o voice_n at_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n shake_v the_o earth_n but_o now_o he_o have_v promise_v say_v yet_o once_o more_o i_o shake_v not_o the_o earth_n only_o but_o also_o heaven_n and_o this_o signify_v the_o removal_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v shake_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v receive_v a_o kingdom_n which_o can_v be_v remove_v the_o word_n of_o our_o text_n thus_o full_o quote_v do_v by_o no_o mean_n import_v that_o man_n or_o their_o soul_n shall_v come_v to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o those_o thing_n at_o their_o death_n as_o mr._n w._n have_v erroneous_o suggest_v but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n run_v in_o the_o present_a tense_n you_o be_v come_v to_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o here_o report_n to_o you_o viz._n you_o be_v come_v to_o the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n to_o the_o angel_n and_o to_o the_o general_a assembly_n and_o church_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v when_o not_o only_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v shake_v but_o also_o heaven_n and_o the_o thing_n so_o shake_v shall_v be_v remove_v i_o conceive_v that_o the_o description_n here_o make_v do_v very_o proper_o denote_v the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n for_o at_o that_o time_n we_o be_v instruct_v by_o the_o scripture_n to_o expect_v the_o thing_n here_o mention_v god_n and_o christ_n attend_v by_o the_o angel_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v consist_v of_o just_a man_n make_v perfect_a both_o in_o their_o spirit_n and_o in_o their_o body_n to_o the_o city_n of_o god_n or_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n which_o st._n john_n tell_v we_o shall_v come_v down_o from_o god_n out_o of_o heaven_n as_o a_o bride_n adorn_v for_o her_o husband_n at_o or_o after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n after_o heaven_n and_o earth_n have_v be_v shake_v and_o be_v remove_v this_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o time_n point_v at_o in_o this_o text_n and_o i_o think_v these_o description_n be_v not_o applicable_a to_o any_o other_o time_n nor_o have_v mr._n w._n mention_v any_o other_o time_n for_o their_o accomplishment_n save_v that_o at_o man_n death_n and_o for_o which_o he_o have_v no_o warrant_n from_o any_o word_n of_o this_o text_n and_o as_o to_o the_o word_n in_o present_a you_o be_v come_v to_o these_o glory_n i_o think_v
and_o salvation_n at_o the_o general_n day_n of_o judgement_n three_o concern_v the_o prayer_n or_o cry_n of_o these_o soul_n for_o vengeance_n upon_o their_o persecutor_n mr._n w._n and_o i_o be_v hotb_v agree_v that_o they_o make_v no_o other_o cry_n in_o this_o text_n than_o the_o blood_n of_o abel_n make_v to_o god_n for_o vengeance_n on_o his_o murderer_n and_o i_o conceive_v there_o be_v no_o real_a prayer_n or_o cry_n in_o either_o of_o these_o case_n but_o that_o god_n himself_o have_v take_v special_a notice_n in_o both_o these_o case_n and_o that_o whensoever_o they_o come_v before_o he_o hy_z remembrance_n or_o any_o sort_n of_o re-presentation_n his_o intention_n always_o continue_v firm_a to_o take_v vengeance_n for_o those_o fact_n upon_o all_o those_o who_o have_v therein_o act_v and_o continue_v in_o such_o wicked_a practice_n without_o save_v repentance_n until_o the_o time_n of_o their_o death_n i_o have_v inclination_n to_o think_v that_o this_o exposition_n of_o our_o prove_a text_n be_v more_o sound_a and_o true_a than_o that_o which_o mr._n w._n have_v before_o make_v of_o it_o and_o hence_o i_o think_v the_o consequence_n will_v be_v very_o clear_a that_o mr._n w_n argument_n draw_v from_o this_o text_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a nor_o a_o good_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n the_o eighteen_o argument_n page_n 118._o rev._n 14.13_o bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n from_o henceforth_o yea_o say_v the_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v they_o p._n 119._o mr._n w._n say_v by_o blessedness_n in_o this_o text_n must_v needs_o be_v mean_v happiness_n and_o all_o happiness_n imply_v joy_n and_o all_o joy_n imply_v life_n and_o when_o he_o have_v raise_v blessedness_n in_o this_o manner_n he_o infer_v from_o the_o word_n henceforth_o that_o it_o must_v commence_v present_o upon_o the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n wrest_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n from_o henceforth_o which_o do_v proper_o signify_v from_o the_o time_n of_o that_o prophecy_n to_o signify_v the_o time_n of_o every_o man_n death_n which_o i_o do_v not_o find_v to_o be_v mention_v or_o intend_v by_o the_o text_n and_o he_o add_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o text_n be_v thus_o open_v he_o seem_v to_o direct_v his_o follow_a discourse_n only_o to_o those_o who_o will_v accept_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o text_n to_o be_v as_o he_o have_v open_v it_o and_o to_o they_o he_o thus_o argue_v if_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o lord_n do_v from_o the_o time_n of_o their_o be_v dead_a commence_v a_o blessedness_n not_o only_o in_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n but_o likewise_o in_o be_v reward_v for_o their_o work_n then_o do_v they_o continue_v to_o live_v in_o some_o part_n of_o they_o which_o be_v their_o spirit_n and_o consequent_o their_o spirit_n die_v not_o with_o their_o body_n but_o be_v immortal_a p._n 120._o mr._n w._n offer_v to_o we_o that_o this_o blessedness_n be_v say_v by_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v give_v from_o the_o time_n of_o man_n death_n this_o he_o collect_v from_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n from_o henceforth_o as_o if_o that_o intend_v from_o the_o time_n of_o their_o death_n whereas_o it_o appear_v in_o this_o text_n to_o intend_v no_o more_o but_o that_o from_o the_o time_n of_o this_o prophecy_n the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n shall_v have_v a_o bless_a rest_n and_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v they_o p._n 121._o then_o mr._n w._n pretend_v that_o the_o dead_a saint_n do_v not_o only_o enjoy_v a_o bless_a rest_n but_o that_o they_o also_o enter_v upon_o and_o enjoy_v reward_n for_o their_o work_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v dead_a but_o i_o find_v no_o ground_n for_o this_o opinion_n in_o the_o text_n but_o conceive_v he_o think_v it_o be_v there_o because_o he_o have_v a_o great_a mind_n it_o shall_v be_v there_o as_o a_o thing_n that_o will_v have_v do_v he_o more_o service_n than_o any_o thing_n that_o he_o can_v find_v in_o the_o text_n beside_o mr._n w._n say_v further_a if_o no_o reward_n of_o active_a happiness_n and_o joy_n follow_v immediate_o after_o death_n it_o will_v be_v wonderful_a the_o spirit_n of_o god_n shall_v pronounce_v a_o blessedness_n on_o such_o as_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n above_o those_o who_o live_v on_o earth_n in_o the_o lord_n and_o this_o will_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o god_n people_n and_o special_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o such_o as_o administer_v comfort_n to_o die_a person_n from_o this_o topick_n by_o tell_v they_o that_o immediate_o after_o death_n their_o soul_n shall_v by_o angel_n be_v transport_v into_o heaven_n or_o paradise_n or_o abraham_n bosom_n or_o some_o such_o place_n where_o they_o shall_v not_o only_o be_v at_o rest_n but_o have_v present_a joy_n and_o happiness_n confer_v upon_o they_o and_o i_o grant_v that_o if_o such_o doctrine_n prove_v otherwise_o than_o true_a many_o person_n may_v have_v be_v deceive_v of_o their_o confident_a expectation_n and_o more_o may_v still_o in_o future_a happen_v so_o to_o be_v and_o therefore_o i_o think_v it_o needful_a to_o take_v further_a consideration_n and_o so_o make_v a_o strict_a scrutiny_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n than_o in_o former_a time_n and_o age_n have_v be_v common_o do_v among_o men._n mr._n w._n say_v he_o think_v there_o be_v none_o of_o god_n people_n who_o will_v not_o rather_o choose_v to_o live_v upon_o earth_n though_o under_o persecution_n then_o to_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o earth_n he_o say_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o from_o the_o time_n of_o die_v the_o saint_n be_v bless_v with_o reward_n for_o their_o work_n as_o well_o as_o from_o their_o labour_n i_o reply_v i_o be_o very_o sorry_a that_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o find_v in_o this_o text_n a_o argument_n or_o any_o of_o his_o former_a the_o thing_n which_o he_o say_v be_v so_o evident_a intend_v i_o presume_v to_o himself_o and_o some_o such_o other_o person_n as_o may_v be_v strong_o fix_v in_o his_o opinion_n and_o belief_n touch_v this_o point_n concern_v which_o and_o this_o text_n i_o intend_v to_o make_v a_o little_a more_o large_a examination_n the_o word_n therefore_o be_v and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v unto_o i_o write_v bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n from_o henceforth_o yea_o say_v the_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v they_o i_o do_v not_o find_v in_o this_o text_n any_o word_n which_o signify_v or_o import_v that_o man_n shall_v be_v reward_v for_o their_o work_n present_o after_o death_n otherwise_o than_o by_o a_o bless_a rest_n from_o their_o labour_n it_o be_v say_v indeed_o that_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v they_o but_o there_o be_v no_o time_n mention_v when_o they_o shall_v overtake_v they_o and_o i_o desire_v mr._n w._n and_o his_o party_n from_o henceforth_o that_o they_o will_v cease_v from_o pervert_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n from_o henceforth_o in_o this_o text_n by_o apply_v its_o energy_n to_o the_o time_n of_o man_n death_n whereas_o in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o text_n it_o stand_v clear_o apply_v to_o the_o time_n when_o this_o prophecy_n be_v reveal_v to_o st._n john_n and_o whereas_o mr._n w._n say_v that_o none_o of_o god_n saint_n upon_o earth_n will_v willing_o embrace_v death_n but_o rather_o choose_v a_o long_a life_n upon_o earth_n although_o under_o a_o state_n of_o great_a persecution_n if_o they_o do_v not_o expect_v heavenly_a reward_n present_o upon_o the_o death_n of_o their_o person_n and_o he_o say_v you_o shall_v never_o persuade_v people_n to_o a_o content_a departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n by_o tell_v they_o they_o shall_v present_o enjoy_v a_o bless_a rest_n in_o the_o lord_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v tell_v of_o and_o persuade_v to_o expect_v glorious_a reward_n in_o heaven_n present_o after_o their_o pass_v out_o of_o this_o world_n i_o confess_v thereupon_o that_o man_n mistake_n upon_o this_o account_n may_v be_v very_o great_a and_o very_o universal_a but_o do_v by_o no_o mean_n believe_v the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o assertion_n viz._n that_o there_o be_v no_o saint_n or_o people_n upon_o earth_n who_o be_v willing_a to_o accept_v of_o death_n whensoever_o god_n shall_v appoint_v it_o to_o come_v upon_o they_o under_o a_o great_a contentment_n of_o mind_n and_o the_o satisfaction_n which_o they_o may_v receive_v from_o this_o text_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o bless_a rest_n in_o the_o lord_n safe_a from_o all_o the_o temptation_n and_o tribulation_n of_o this_o world_n and_o from_o the_o power_n and_o malice_n of_o wicked_a man_n
a_o conviction_n strong_a enough_o to_o oblige_v all_o people_n to_o a_o concurrence_n in_o that_o opinion_n because_o all_o these_o evidence_n be_v resolvable_a into_o a_o humane_a authority_n upon_o which_o i_o have_v no_o inclination_n to_o found_v such_o a_o faith_n as_o be_v the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v i.e._n such_o a_o belief_n as_o concern_v which_o there_o be_v neither_o doubt_n nor_o question_n mr._n w._n give_v we_o here_o a_o long_a testimony_n out_o of_o josephus_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v collect_v that_o some_o jew_n hold_v one_o thing_n and_o some_o another_o concern_v soul_n some_o thought_n of_o they_o that_o one_o sort_n live_v in_o perpetual_a prison_n after_o death_n and_o another_o sort_n rise_v very_o short_o and_o mr._n w._n say_v the_o generality_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v of_o that_o mind_n and_o say_v the_o sadducee_n deny_v the_o soul_n immortality_n and_o show_v that_o josephus_n be_v no_o friend_n of_o they_o then_o mr._n w._n quote_v joseph_n a_o speaker_n say_v that_o man_n soul_n go_v to_o heaven_n and_o then_o after_o a_o certain_a revolution_n or_o period_n be_v again_o command_v to_o live_v in_o body_n another_o speaker_n say_v it_o be_v misery_n to_o live_v and_o not_o to_o die_v for_o death_n free_v our_o soul_n from_o prison_n into_o their_o most_o pure_a and_o proper_a place_n so_o as_o whilst_o they_o be_v in_o the_o body_n they_o may_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v dead_a but_o this_o pass_v with_o i_o for_o a_o platonic_a fable_n concern_v which_o enough_o have_v be_v speak_v this_o jew_n say_v the_o soul_n come_v secret_o into_o man_n without_o be_v perceive_v and_o so_o depart_v from_o they_o again_o i_o reply_v de_fw-fr non_fw-la apparentibus_fw-la &_o non_fw-la existentibus_fw-la eadem_fw-la est_fw-la ratio_fw-la i_o say_v also_o that_o where_o ever_o the_o blood_n pass_v free_o in_o the_o body_n the_o part_n and_o member_n be_v fresh_a and_o lively_a but_o where_o obstruction_n hinder_v the_o rivage_n of_o blood_n from_o pass_v the_o bodily_a part_n and_o member_n become_v wither_v and_o useless_a mr._n w._n conclude_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n always_o hold_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n forget_v the_o text_n which_o i_o have_v before_o quote_v which_o prove_v the_o patriarchal_a and_o moysaicall_a opinion_n to_o have_v be_v that_o the_o life_n of_o sensative_a creature_n lie_v in_o their_o blood_n and_o other_o opinion_n of_o the_o ancient_a jew_n have_v he_o quote_v none_o till_o that_o which_o he_o seem_v to_o collect_v out_o of_o the_o discourse_n betwixt_o saul_n and_o the_o witch_n of_o endor_n and_o which_o i_o do_v not_o agree_v to_o be_v prove_v nor_o do_v job_n or_o david_n make_v any_o mention_n of_o spiritual_a soul_n so_o that_o solomon_n write_n be_v the_o first_o wherein_o we_o find_v mention_n of_o this_o sort_n of_o soul_n of_o mr._n w._n in_o his_o three_o chapter_n he_o doubt_v and_o in_o his_o twelve_o chapter_n he_o say_v in_o few_o word_n and_o transient_o the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o and_o there_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o humane_a person_n and_o say_v the_o body_n return_v to_o the_o dust_n as_o it_o be_v what_o become_v of_o the_o spirit_n he_o do_v not_o perceive_v and_o therefore_o content_v himself_o to_o say_v the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o these_o be_v all_o the_o argument_n mr._n w._n have_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n whence_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o infer_v that_o he_o find_v no_o other_o text_n in_o that_o testament_n which_o make_v for_o his_o purpose_n but_o i_o think_v fit_a to_o mind_v he_o of_o the_o history_n in_o the_o second_o of_o maccabee_n concern_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o the_o seven_o brother_n by_o antiochus_n there_o he_o shall_v find_v several_a of_o they_o declare_v the_o hope_n they_o have_v of_o be_v restore_v to_o their_o mangle_a limb_n at_o and_o by_o the_o resurrection_n without_o mention_v their_o build_n of_o any_o hope_n upon_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n whence_o i_o collect_v that_o opinion_n have_v not_o yet_o prevail_v among_o the_o jew_n of_o those_o time_n it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o a_o relation_n of_o this_o martyrdom_n be_v subjoin_v to_o the_o work_n of_o josephus_n as_o if_o it_o be_v of_o his_o write_n but_o i_o think_v the_o very_a great_a verbosity_n of_o that_o write_n prove_v it_o to_o be_v none_o of_o he_o but_o it_o relate_v divers_a say_n of_o these_o brother_n show_v the_o dependence_n of_o their_o comfort_n upon_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n and_o its_o immediate_a go_v to_o heaven_n and_o this_o difference_n prove_v to_o my_o understanding_n that_o the_o jew_n have_v alter_v their_o opinion_n concern_v their_o state_n after_o death_n between_o the_o time_n of_o the_o maccabee_n write_v and_o that_o wherein_o josephus_n write_v his_o relation_n if_o the_o same_o be_v true_o of_o his_o write_n p._n 145._o mr._n w._n begin_v his_o quotation_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n i_o have_v not_o the_o opportunity_n of_o examine_v his_o quotation_n with_o the_o original_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o find_v it_o reasonable_a to_o deny_v or_o question_v the_o verity_n of_o any_o of_o they_o take_v they_o therefore_o for_o veritable_a i_o agree_v they_o give_v very_o strong_a testimony_n that_o those_o write_n of_o the_o father_n by_o he_o quote_v prove_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o writer_n to_o have_v be_v much_o consonant_n to_o his_o opinion_n and_o i_o proffer_v only_o this_o gloss_n upon_o the_o last_o of_o they_o viz._n that_o of_o st._n ambrose_n who_o remember_v our_o lord_n go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o his_o disciple_n unto_o which_o i_o will_v add_v that_o which_o follow_v next_o after_o in_o the_o text_n when_o i_o have_v prepare_v fit_v place_n for_o you_o i_o will_v come_v and_o receive_v you_o to_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o you_o may_v be_v also_o this_o come_n of_o christ_n i_o conceive_v to_o intend_v his_o second_o come_v to_o judgement_n and_o then_o and_o not_o till_o th●n_v that_o which_o our_o lord_n say_v in_o this_o text_n may_v be_v accomplish_v it_o seem_v his_o word_n quote_v out_o of_o iraeneus_n do_v not_o prove_v the_o soul_n immediate_o go_v to_o heaven_n after_o death_n but_o to_o a_o paradise_n or_o place_n of_o pleasure_n distinct_a from_o heaven_n and_o yet_o i_o allow_v they_o to_o be_v a_o good_a proof_n that_o iraeneus_n by_o they_o intend_v a_o belief_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n his_o second_o author_n which_o he_o quote_v he_o call_v the_o author_n of_o the_o response_n apud_fw-la justin_n this_o i_o do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o accept_v as_o the_o opinion_n of_o justin_n martyr_n three_o for_o the_o say_n of_o polycarpus_n he_o quote_v no_o author_n from_o whence_o he_o take_v it_o whence_o it_o possible_o may_v be_v take_v from_o baroneus_n his_o four_o quotation_n out_o of_o origen_n seem_v no_o strong_a proof_n because_o he_o be_v a_o perfect_a platonist_n both_o before_o and_o after_o his_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n five_o his_o quotation_n out_o of_o tertullian_n speak_v of_o such_o a_o place_n for_o the_o reception_n of_o depart_a soul_n as_o be_v far_o above_o the_o infernal_a place_n and_o a_o place_n of_o refreshment_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a when_o they_o be_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n where_o they_o shall_v abide_v to_o the_o resurrection_n yet_o take_v it_o for_o a_o different_a place_n from_o heaven_n and_o i_o agree_v it_o prove_v his_o agreement_n to_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n his_o six_o quotation_n out_o of_o cyprian_a seem_v very_o full_a to_o his_o purpose_n that_o the_o martyr_n soul_n go_v immediate_o to_o heaven_n in_o his_o seven_o quotation_n concern_v the_o oration_n of_o constantine_n i_o find_v no_o expression_n in_o it_o that_o prove_v strong_o for_o he_o save_o that_o emperor_n be_v discourse_v concern_v the_o soul_n immortality_n upon_o which_o i_o think_v he_o may_v very_o well_o dispute_v without_o make_v any_o certain_a conclusion_n thereupon_o his_o eight_o quotation_n out_o of_o gregory_n nyssen_n seem_v to_o i_o partly_o platonic_a nine_o what_o prudentius_n say_v seem_v but_o to_o be_v render_v the_o parable_n of_o dives_n in_o verse_n ten_o gregory_n naz._n who_o call_v the_o body_n and_o this_o life_n the_o prison_n of_o the_o soul_n follow_v therein_o the_o platonic_a doctrine_n p._n 152._o mr._n w._n say_v he_o have_v thus_o give_v we_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o four_o first_o century_n of_o it_o which_o be_v no_o small_a argument_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n and_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n have_v the_o
body_n so_o as_o instead_o of_o those_o day_n of_o darkness_n which_o solomon_n mention_n the_o spirit_n or_o principle_n of_o life_n in_o man_n enjoy_v a_o great_a light_n activity_n and_o freedom_n than_o it_o have_v before_o the_o death_n of_o that_o party_n who_o it_o former_o inlve_v and_o act_v and_o this_o if_o it_o be_v true_a seem_v direct_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o solomon_n in_o this_o text_n have_v affirm_v there_o be_v day_n of_o darkness_n and_o many_o of_o they_o say_v the_o text_n of_o solomon_n mr._n w._n say_v that_o at_o the_o death_n of_o the_o party_n or_o soon_o after_o good_a man_n soul_n enjoy_v much_o more_o light_n liberty_n and_o glory_n than_o every_o they_o have_v before_o so_o as_o they_o seem_v to_o say_v the_o soul_n of_o good_a man_n have_v no_o dark_a day_n at_o all_o and_o therefore_o man_n that_o be_v jovial_a and_o merry_a need_v have_v no_o regard_n to_o such_o day_n of_o darkness_n as_o solomon_n in_o this_o text_n give_v they_o warning_n of_o and_o yet_o such_o man_n do_v not_o use_v to_o deny_v that_o a_o solemn_a and_o general_a judgement_n shall_v appear_v after_o those_o many_o day_n of_o darkness_n shall_v be_v consummate_a and_o finish_v and_o therein_o they_o agree_v with_o solomon_n opinion_n although_o concern_v his_o day_n of_o darkness_n they_o seem_v very_o much_o to_o differ_v from_o he_o but_o if_o his_o opinion_n may_v prevail_v in_o this_o case_n it_o offer_v a_o strong_a objection_n against_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n thus_o far_o objection_n have_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o we_o now_o proceed_v to_o draw_v like_o objection_n from_o the_o new_a a_o six_o objection_n thence_o to_o be_v raise_v i_o take_v from_o john_n 14._o 2_o in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o mansion_n i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o and_o if_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o i_o will_v come_v again_o and_o receive_v you_o again_o to_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o you_o may_v be_v also_o luke_n 21.26_o the_o power_n of_o heaven_n shall_v be_v shake_v and_o then_o shall_v they_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o a_o cloud_n with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n and_o when_o these_o thing_n begin_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v then_o look_v up_o and_o lift_v up_o your_o head_n for_o your_o redemption_n draw_v nigh_o viz._n reward_n for_o the_o saint_n col._n 3.4_o when_o christ_n who_o be_v our_o life_n shall_v appear_v then_o shall_v you_o appear_v with_o he_o also_o in_o glory_n 1_o john_n 3_o 2._o belove_a now_o be_v we_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v but_o we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v the_o apostle_n know_v whilst_o in_o this_o life_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o he_o do_v not_o know_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v after_o death_n nor_o be_v that_o likely_a to_o be_v know_v till_o christ_n appear_v at_o his_o second_o come_v and_o then_o he_o know_v that_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v make_v like_o christ_n and_o appear_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n as_o paul_n have_v above_o assert_v 2_o tim._n 4.7_o paul_n say_v i_o have_v finish_v my_o course_n i_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n henceforth_o there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o to_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o appear_v the_o crown_n it_o seem_v be_v lay_v up_o for_o he_o even_o while_o he_o be_v alive_a but_o be_v not_o expect_v to_o be_v give_v he_o till_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n second_o appear_v and_o then_o it_o will_v also_o be_v give_v to_o all_o those_o who_o love_n and_o desire_v that_o appear_v 1_o tim._n 1.10_o the_o lord_n give_v mercy_n to_o the_o house_n of_o onesiphorus_n the_o lord_n grant_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v find_v mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o that_o day_n he_o do_v not_o pray_v that_o his_o friend_n may_v find_v mercy_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n or_o at_o a_o intermediate_n judgement_n but_o at_o that_o adhere_v and_o last_v day_n all_o these_o text_n have_v be_v quote_v to_o give_v evidence_n of_o the_o time_n when_o reward_n and_o punishment_n after_o death_n be_v warrantable_o to_o be_v expect_v they_o all_o express_v the_o time_n thereof_o to_o be_v at_o our_o lord_n second_o come_v and_o the_o last_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n thereupon_o ensue_v but_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o recompense_n warrantable_o to_o be_v expect_v soon_o after_o the_o time_n of_o man_n death_n or_o in_o any_o intermediate_n state_n between_o death_n and_o the_o resurrection_n nor_o have_v the_o scripture_n that_o i_o find_v any_o mention_n in_o other_o place_n of_o recompense_n to_o be_v distribute_v in_o such_o a_o in●ermediate_n state_n except_o in_o parable_n and_o trance_n only_o i_o have_v in_o this_o objection_n repeat_v two_o text_n out_o of_o which_o mr._n w._n make_v objection_n single_o against_o his_o own_o opinion_n but_o i_o have_v link_v they_o together_o and_o strengthen_v they_o with_o other_o text_n of_o scripture_n of_o the_o like_a import_n quia_fw-la vis_fw-la unita_fw-la fortior_fw-la concern_v mr._n w_n text_n i_o pretend_v here_o to_o examine_v the_o answer_n which_o he_o have_v single_o give_v to_o each_o of_o they_o to_o the_o text_n of_o our_o appear_v with_o christ_n in_o glory_n he_o answer_v and_o grant_v that_o the_o appearance_n here_o speak_v of_o intend_v that_o of_o the_o last_o judgement_n for_o till_o then_o the_o saint_n can_v be_v say_v to_o appear_v in_o glory_n with_o christ_n and_o yet_o say_v he_o they_o may_v be_v in_o glory_n with_o christ_n though_o they_o do_v not_o appear_v in_o such_o glory_n to_o men._n i_o reply_v that_o though_o they_o do_v not_o appear_v in_o such_o glory_n to_o man_n yet_o if_o there_o be_v true_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o he_o maintain_v they_o do_v appear_v in_o glory_n before_o god_n and_o the_o angel_n and_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n make_v perfect_a and_o therefore_o may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o appear_v in_o glory_n which_o st._n paul_n say_v they_o do_v not_o till_o christ_n second_o come_v and_o appear_v in_o glory_n mr._n w._n say_v his_o sort_n of_o soul_n may_v appear_v in_o heaven_n in_o glory_n before_o that_o time_n but_o it_o lie_v upon_o he_o to_o make_v some_o proof_n that_o they_o do_v so_o which_o he_o neither_o offer_v nor_o i_o think_v be_v able_a to_o perform_v and_o therefore_o i_o think_v his_o answer_n to_o this_o text_n be_v of_o small_a weight_n the_o other_o text_n to_o which_o he_o make_v a_o answer_n be_v that_o of_o paul_n expect_v a_o crown_n to_o be_v give_v he_o at_o that_o day_n or_o the_o time_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n and_o he_o grant_v that_o the_o time_n intend_v by_o the_o word_n that_o day_n be_v that_o of_o the_o last_o judgement_n and_o say_v thereupon_o what_o then_o it_o follow_v not_o thence_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v not_o soul_n in_o glory_n before_o that_o time_n for_o king_n may_v reign_v before_o they_o receive_v their_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n and_o so_o shall_v we_o be_v king_n and_o priest_n in_o our_o soul_n unto_o god_n in_o the_o heaven_n this_o mr._n w._n pretend_v to_o say_v out_o of_o his_o own_o fruitful_a invention_n without_o offer_v any_o proof_n of_o our_o be_v king_n and_o priest_n in_o heaven_n to_o god_n in_o our_o bare_a and_o naked_a soul_n only_o for_o neither_o any_o of_o our_o before_o quote_v text_n do_v mention_v such_o thing_n nor_o be_v they_o to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o text_n of_o scripture_n whatsoever_o except_o the_o vision_n appear_v to_o st._n john_n when_o he_o be_v intrance_v for_o the_o parable_n of_o dives_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o be_v in_o heaven_n or_o the_o preferment_n of_o be_v king_n and_o priest_n to_o god_n or_o in_o his_o presence_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o reject_v this_o device_n or_o fancy_n of_o mr._n w_n brain_n and_o to_o conceive_v that_o all_o our_o quote_v text_n be_v true_a according_a to_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o their_o word_n mr._n w._n father_n say_v there_o be_v no_o word_n or_o syllable_n in_o this_o text_n that_o deny_v intervening_a reward_n to_o the_o saint_n before_o that_o day_n which_o it_o must_v have_v do_v before_o it_o can_v serve_v his_o opposer_n purpose_n thereunto_o reply_v i_o say_v there_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o need_n of_o such_o a_o denial_n for_o that_o if_o god_n or_o man_n promise_v to_o give_v reward_n or_o punishment_n at_o a_o appoint_a time_n
steadfast_a always_o abound_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n forasmuch_o as_o you_o know_v that_o your_o labour_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a in_o the_o lord_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v thus_o certain_o and_o undoubted_o prove_v to_o you_o you_o must_v be_v steadfast_a and_o unmoveable_a in_o your_o religion_n know_v that_o your_o labour_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a in_o the_o lord_n in_o mr._n w_n thirteen_o objection_n against_o his_o own_o opinion_n he_o propound_v it_o thus_o our_o opponent_n allege_v vers_fw-la 18._o of_o this_o chapter_n infer_v that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n then_o those_o who_o be_v fall_v asleep_a in_o christ_n be_v perish_v which_o they_o say_v can_v not_o follow_v if_o there_o be_v any_o state_n of_o a_o bless_a life_n for_o a_o separate_a soul_n for_o that_o though_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a yet_o soul_n already_o in_o heaven_n shall_v still_o be_v happy_a there_o and_o not_o be_v perish_v for_o want_v of_o a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o person_n to_o this_o mr._n w._n answer_n that_o in_o the_o course_n of_o this_o text_n st_n paul_n intend_v to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o teach_v that_o if_o his_o resurrection_n be_v not_o true_a than_o all_o those_o who_o be_v fall_v asleep_a in_o christ_n shall_v be_v perish_v there_o mr._n w._n say_v thus_o now_o to_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v rise_v which_o be_v the_o antecedent_n of_o the_o apostle_n argument_n he_o argue_v either_o christ_n be_v rise_v or_o we_o have_v be_v preacher_n of_o what_o be_v vain_a and_o false_a and_o then_o those_o who_o be_v fall_v asleep_a in_o christ_n be_v perish_v hereunto_o i_o reply_v that_o we_o do_v not_o read_v in_o this_o or_o any_o other_o text_n that_o there_o be_v a_o dispute_n among_o the_o corinthian_n about_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o it_o be_v both_o preach_v and_o believe_v among_o they_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o from_o that_o establish_v and_o undoubted_a truth_n the_o apostle_n infer_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o say_v the_o one_o of_o they_o be_v as_o true_a as_o the_o other_o but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a then_o be_v christ_n not_o rise_v and_o if_o these_o be_v not_o both_o true_a than_o all_o christian_a religion_n be_v vain_a and_o false_a and_o those_o who_o be_v fall_v asleep_a in_o christ_n be_v perish_v this_o sort_n of_o argue_v seem_v to_o suppose_v a_o possibility_n that_o those_o who_o be_v fall_v asleep_a in_o christ_n may_v be_v perish_v which_o be_v a_o vain_a supposal_n if_o their_o separate_a soul_n do_v still_o subsist_v and_o be_v immortal_a because_o that_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o resurrection_n or_o not_o a_o resurrection_n and_o whether_o christ_n be_v rise_v or_o not_o rise_v yet_o separate_a soul_n will_v still_o have_v a_o subsistence_n and_o not_o be_v perish_v as_o here_o our_o apostle_n suppose_v they_o will_v be_v if_o the_o resurrection_n so_o preach_v to_o the_o corinthian_n be_v not_o true_a so_o as_o our_o apostle_n expression_n seem_v not_o well_o to_o agree_v with_o mr._n w_n opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n but_o it_o be_v at_o full_a agreement_n with_o the_o material_a opinion_n who_o maintain_v as_o st._n paul_n do_v that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n than_o all_o hope_n of_o recompense_n future_a to_o this_o life_n be_v vain_a and_o those_o who_o be_v fall_v asleep_a in_o christ_n be_v perish_v mr._n w._n say_v far_o there_o be_v no_o way_n or_o mean_n for_o expiation_n of_o your_o sin_n and_o removal_n of_o the_o curse_n beside_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n i_o say_v we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o text_n that_o his_o death_n will_v avail_v we_o nothing_o without_o his_o resurrection_n be_v our_o resurrection_n also_o then_o mr._n w._n quote_v if_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n still_o abide_v on_o you_o and_o say_v this_o be_v speak_v because_o his_o resurrection_n be_v to_o be_v the_o evidence_a sign_n among_o the_o rest_n that_o his_o death_n be_v accept_v of_o the_o father_n for_o that_o end_n he_o profess_v to_o lay_v it_o down_o which_o be_v to_o expiate_v our_o sin_n i_o say_v he_o profess_v to_o lay_v it_o down_o that_o he_o may_v take_v it_o up_o again_o and_o he_o be_v convince_v that_o it_o will_v be_v accept_v of_o his_o father_n before_o he_o lay_v it_o down_o and_o then_o he_o rise_v again_o for_o our_o justification_n rather_o than_o as_o a_o testimony_n that_o his_o death_n be_v accept_v of_o the_o father_n of_o which_o there_o be_v before_o no_o doubt_n at_o all_o mr._n w._n go_v on_o and_o say_v he_o deny_v that_o the_o apostle_n ●ntends_v by_o these_o reason_n to_o prove_v immediate_o the_o resurrection_n of_o all_o man_n but_o only_o as_o their_o resurrection_n come_v in_o upon_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n in_o these_o verse_n now_o name_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v prove_v to_o this_o i_o reply_v that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o doubt_n which_o some_o man_n have_v thereof_o be_v the_o principal_a and_o only_a question_n which_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v dispute_v of_o in_o this_o text_n for_o we_o do_v not_o read_v of_o doubt_n make_v by_o any_o man_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n be_v preach_v to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o that_o he_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o this_o doctrine_n be_v receive_v and_o believe_v by_o the_o corinthian_n and_o yet_o some_o of_o they_o deny_v the_o general_a resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o to_o convince_v those_o unbeliever_n of_o their_o error_n the_o apostle_n tell_v they_o that_o the_o general_a resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v as_o true_a and_o certain_a as_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n be_v and_o therefore_o i_o think_v the_o main_a scope_n of_o st._n paul_n be_v to_o convince_v the_o doubt_a corinthian_n and_o to_o prove_v the_o general_a resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o which_o of_o we_o two_o have_v the_o right_n in_o this_o point_n shall_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o reader_n as_o will_v consult_v st._n paul_n text_n thereupon_o mr._n w._n say_v further_a to_o his_o opposer_n the_o manner_n of_o the_o apostle_n argument_n be_v not_o as_o you_o conceive_v that_o if_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n do_v never_o rise_v than_o you_o be_v in_o your_o sin_n and_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o christ_n be_v perish_v reply_v thereunto_o i_o say_v that_o i_o know_v none_o of_o his_o opposer_n who_o argue_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o he_o have_v impose_v upon_o they_o nor_o that_o examine_v or_o consider_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n because_o we_o do_v not_o find_v in_o the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o the_o bible_n that_o expression_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n it_o be_v true_a that_o as_o we_o now_o use_v the_o apostle_n creed_n in_o english_a we_o find_v there_o mention_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n but_o clear_o we_o therein_o depart_v from_o our_o original_n of_o that_o creed_n both_o in_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a language_n the_o greek_a call_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o latin_a call_v it_o resurrectionem_fw-la carnis_fw-la the_o true_a english_a of_o both_o which_o expression_n be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o after_o that_o manner_n i_o think_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v mend_v in_o our_o english_a translation_n or_o creed_n whence_o it_o seem_v not_o to_o follow_v that_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v first_o raise_v and_o then_o a_o substantial_a intelligent_a spirit_n ab_fw-la extra_fw-la shall_v be_v put_v into_o it_o but_o that_o such_o raise_v shall_v be_v like_o the_o first_o formation_n of_o adam_n and_o the_o cover_n of_o ezekiel_n dry_a bone_n with_o flesh_n and_o skin_n and_o the_o fill_v they_o with_o blood_n and_o humour_n apt_a to_o be_v kindle_v and_o inflame_v by_o such_o a_o moderate_a wind_n or_o breath_n as_o may_v be_v breathe_v upon_o they_o or_o into_o they_o for_o kindle_v the_o flame_n of_o life_n in_o their_o vital_a part_n thence_o to_o be_v communicate_v to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o body_n john_n 5.28_o the_o hour_n be_v come_v in_o the_o which_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o shall_v come_v forth_o they_o that_o have_v do_v good_a to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v evil_a to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o damnation_n the_o manner_n after_o which_o person_n so_o raise_v shall_v come_v forth_o seem_v to_o be_v by_o form_v the_o flesh_n bones_o artery_n vein_n nerve_n and_o sinew_n into_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o humane_a
body_n contain_v therein_o such_o blood_n humour_n and_o organ_n as_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o production_n and_o perfection_n of_o life_n and_o all_o the_o faculty_n and_o power_n of_o a_o humane_a person_n who_o blood_n and_o humour_n will_v then_o be_v apt_a for_o kindle_v into_o a_o flame_n or_o glow_v of_o the_o blood_n by_o such_o a_o moderate_a breath_n as_o ezekiel_n be_v direct_v to_o call_v for_o to_o come_v from_o the_o four_o wind_n and_o breath_n upon_o these_o new_o form_v person_n that_o they_o may_v live_v which_o do_v the_o new_o form_v person_n be_v thereby_o make_v live_v able_a to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o at_o his_o call_n to_o come_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n and_o deliver_v themselves_o from_o the_o strong_a band_n of_o death_n and_o such_o i_o conceive_v the_o rise_n of_o the_o dead_a will_v be_v not_o a_o partial_a but_o a_o total_a resurrection_n of_o the_o person_n not_o first_o the_o body_n raise_v and_o then_o a_o intelligent_a soul_n be_v inject_v thereinto_o for_o the_o body_n can_v rise_v or_o come_v out_o of_o its_o grave_a without_o a_o spirit_n of_o life_n or_o such_o a_o sort_n of_o soul_n as_o be_v natural_a suitable_a and_o fit_v for_o that_o performance_n i_o do_v therefore_o reject_v the_o expression_n by_o he_o use_v viz._n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n because_o it_o be_v not_o where_o use_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o because_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o nature_n as_o that_o a_o body_n shall_v rise_v and_o live_v without_o a_o soul_n what_o rise_v therefore_o be_v not_o only_o the_o body_n but_o the_o person_n which_o be_v dead_a a_o very_a like_a or_o his_o very_a same_o person_n which_o before_o have_v die_v mr._n w._n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o objection_n say_v to_o his_o opposer_n that_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a inference_n you_o draw_v from_o this_o text_n that_o because_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o christ_n be_v rise_v that_o therefore_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v mortal_a i_o reply_v this_o will_v be_v a_o very_a strange_a inference_n indeed_o if_o his_o opposer_n either_o say_v so_o or_o think_v so_o but_o they_o profess_v to_o do_v neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o but_o this_o they_o do_v say_v and_o believe_v that_o if_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o general_n resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o both_o true_a than_o all_o those_o who_o be_v fall_v asleep_a though_o never_o so_o good_a be_v perish_v and_o consequent_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n have_v not_o a_o separate_a subsistence_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n and_o thus_o i_o finish_v my_o reply_n to_o mr._n w_n answer_n give_v to_o this_o objection_n and_o proceed_v to_o the_o give_v concurrent_a evidence_n from_o the_o text_n before_o quote_v for_o strengthen_v the_o force_n of_o this_o my_o eight_o objection_n our_o apostle_n have_v finish_v this_o text_n go_v on_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n to_o verse_n 32._o and_o there_o say_v if_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n i_o have_v fight_v with_o beast_n at_o ephesus_n what_o advantage_v it_o i_o if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o let_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o too_o morrow_n we_o die_v which_o saying_n i_o think_v may_v be_v thus_o right_o paraphrase_a whatsoever_o suffering_n i_o undergo_v for_o christ_n sake_n in_o this_o world_n they_o will_v advantage_v i_o nothing_o if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o and_o then_o we_o need_v no_o more_o in_o this_o world_n but_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o die_v and_o there_o be_v a_o and_o of_o we_o and_o if_o this_o say_v be_v true_a and_o the_o very_a meaning_n of_o our_o apostle_n in_o this_o text_n i_o think_v it_o give_v a_o fatal_a blow_n to_o the_o separate_a subsistence_n of_o soul_n and_o yet_o our_o apostle_n proceed_v further_a in_o this_o chapter_n to_o verse_n 52._o where_o he_o say_v the_o trumpet_n shall_v sound_v and_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v raise_v uncorruptible_a and_o we_o who_o be_v then_o alive_a shall_v be_v change_v and_o the_o last_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n he_o add_v therefore_o my_o belove_a brethren_n be_v you_o steadfast_a unmoveable_a always_o abound_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o as_o much_o as_o you_o know_v your_o labour_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a in_o the_o lord_n for_o i_o have_v give_v you_o as_o certain_a proof_n as_o faith_n can_v desire_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o general_n resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a at_o which_o time_n all_o people_n shall_v be_v reward_v or_o punish_v according_a to_o their_o work_n heb._n 11.35_o the_o saint_n endure_v great_a persecution_n and_o torment_n not_o accept_v deliverance_n from_o they_o because_o they_o expect_v a_o better_a resurrection_n luke_n 14.14_o when_o thou_o make_v a_o feast_n do_v not_o only_o bid_v thy_o friend_n and_o rich_a neighbour_n who_o be_v likely_a to_o make_v thou_o a_o recompense_n but_o bid_v also_o the_o poor_a the_o maim_a the_o lame_a and_o the_o blind_a who_o can_v recompense_n thou_o and_o therefore_o for_o thy_o so_o do_v thou_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a and_o now_o i_o demand_v one_o text_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v produce_v where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o man_n for_o their_o good_a work_n do_v in_o this_o world_n shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o or_o soon_o after_o their_o death_n i_o know_v of_o no_o text_n that_o declare_v this_o to_o we_o or_o from_o which_o it_o can_v with_o clear_a reason_n be_v collect_v and_o therefore_o i_o say_v that_o the_o reason_n give_v we_o why_o our_o labour_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a in_o the_o lord_n be_v because_o there_o shall_v certain_o be_v a_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o after_o that_o a_o judgement_n wherein_o every_o person_n shall_v be_v reward_v according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o upon_o these_o ground_n i_o be_o ready_a to_o conclude_v that_o this_o my_o eight_o objection_n strong_o batter_v and_o assault_n and_o even_o overthrow_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n a_o nine_o objection_n against_o mr._n w_n opinion_n i_o raise_v from_o 1_o thess_n 4.13_o where_o st._n paul_n say_v i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o to_o be_v ignorant_a brethren_n concern_v they_o that_o be_v asleep_a that_o you_o sorrow_n not_o even_o as_o other_o which_o have_v no_o hope_n for_o if_o we_o believe_v that_o jesus_n die_v and_z rise_v again_o even_o so_o they_o also_o that_o sleep_n in_o jesus_n will_v god_n bring_v with_o he_o and_o so_o go_v on_o describe_v the_o manner_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a add_v comfort_v one_o another_o with_o these_o word_n i_o offer_v this_o for_o you_o comfort_v that_o there_o shall_v certain_o be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a wherein_o your_o dead_a friend_n also_o shall_v rise_v again_o and_o i_o will_v have_v you_o make_v this_o a_o comfort_n to_o you_o concern_v both_o your_o dead_a friend_n and_o your_o die_a self_n advise_v you_o to_o repose_v your_o hope_n thereupon_o and_o to_o comfort_v yourselves_o and_o one_o another_o with_o your_o discourse_n and_o communication_n concern_v it_o our_o apostle_n appear_v here_o comfort_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o correspondent_o against_o the_o suffering_n of_o death_n either_o by_o their_o friend_n or_o by_o themselves_o and_o take_v his_o ground_n of_o comfort_n in_o such_o case_n from_o our_o assure_a doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o thereupon_o i_o observe_v that_o he_o do_v not_o ground_n and_o hope_n or_o comfort_n upon_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n or_o its_o go_v to_o heaven_n immediate_o after_o death_n which_o give_v i_o a_o firm_a ground_n of_o persuasion_n that_o he_o either_o do_v not_o know_v of_o this_o opinion_n or_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o for_o if_o he_o have_v believe_v this_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a i_o think_v he_o can_v not_o have_v forget_v or_o forbear_v to_o give_v his_o disciple_n comfort_v from_o that_o topick_n because_o such_o comfort_n will_v have_v be_v much_o near_a than_o those_o which_o he_o derive_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o will_v have_v be_v both_o a_o more_o short_a and_o sure_a way_n to_o that_o salvation_n and_o future_a happiness_n which_o man_n desire_v and_o therefore_o if_o st._n paul_n have_v believe_v this_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a i_o think_v he_o can_v have_v no_o reason_n for_o his_o balk_v it_o in_o this_o place_n but_o in_o congruity_n of_o reason_n must_v have_v say_v brethren_n comfort_v yourselves_o against_o sorrow_n for_o your_o friend_n death_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o your_o own_o by_o consider_v the_o happy_a state_n of_o those_o which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o that_o their_o spirit_n or_o soul_n immediate_o
upon_o part_v from_o their_o body_n either_o return_n to_o god_n who_o give_v they_o and_o be_v receive_v into_o heaven_n and_o happiness_n or_o they_o shall_v be_v carry_v by_o angel_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o there_o enjoy_v at_o least_o a_o bless_a rest_n from_o their_o labour_n and_o all_o future_a suffering_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o divine_n of_o our_o time_n will_v ready_o have_v administer_v such_o comfort_n as_o these_o to_o the_o friend_n of_o dead_a people_n or_o even_o to_o the_o die_a person_n themselves_o but_o in_o our_o quote_v text_n we_o find_v st._n paul_n do_v not_o so_o proceed_v with_o his_o correspondent_o upon_o this_o like_a occasion_n for_o the_o only_a comfort_n which_o thereupon_o he_o propound_v to_o they_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o in_o this_o place_n he_o somewhat_o at_o large_a deliver_v as_o know_v that_o to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o man_n comfort_n in_o such_o case_n without_o remember_v or_o believe_v our_o late_a comfortable_a doctrine_n or_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n go_v to_o heaven_n immediate_o after_o death_n and_o hereupon_o i_o conclude_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v either_o not_o know_v to_o he_o or_o not_o believe_v by_o he_o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o error_n and_o no_o certain_a truth_n or_o the_o very_a truth_n of_o god_n a_o ten_o objection_n against_o mr._n w_n opinion_n i_o raise_v from_o the_o concurrent_a testimony_n of_o many_o scripture_n text_n refer_v the_o expectation_n of_o future_a reward_n or_o punishment_n look_v for_o after_o this_o life_n unto_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o last_o judgement_n without_o find_v and_o such_o expectation_n at_o the_o time_n of_o man_n death_n refer_v to_o or_o mention_v in_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o mr._n w'_v own_o objection_n he_o have_v make_v this_o the_o six_o and_o propound_v it_o thus_o the_o scripture_n say_v my_o opposer_n do_v frequent_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o great_a and_o general_a day_n of_o judgement_n and_o refer_v all_o the_o reward_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o that_o day_n and_o so_o all_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a therefore_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n die_v with_o their_o body_n as_o be_v uncapable_a of_o reward_n or_o punishment_n till_o then_o to_o this_o objection_n he_o answer_v concessive_o and_o say_v i_o do_v partly_o acknowledge_v the_o first_o part_n of_o what_o you_o say_v that_o scripture_n do_v frequent_o make_v mention_n of_o that_o great_a day_n and_o again_o that_o the_o great_a reward_n and_o punishment_n be_v reserve_v to_o that_o day_n but_o i_o deny_v the_o late_a part_n of_o what_o you_o say_v because_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n make_v perfect_a and_o of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o thief_n be_v in_o paradise_n that_o day_n he_o die_v and_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o every_o man_n return_v to_o god_n at_o death_n to_o be_v deal_v with_o according_a to_o what_o they_o do_v in_o the_o body_n and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v enough_o to_o blunt_v the_o edge_n of_o his_o present_a objection_n and_o hereunto_o i_o reply_v that_o what_o he_o have_v say_v concern_v the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n make_v perfect_a have_v before_o be_v answer_v and_o so_o have_v that_o of_o the_o thief_n be_v soul_n be_v in_o paradise_n that_o day_n and_o prove_v to_o be_v invalid_a testimony_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n his_o three_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n seem_v to_o be_v misrecited_n for_o the_o text_n do_v not_o say_v it_o return_v to_o god_n to_o be_v deal_v with_o according_a to_o what_o they_o do_v in_o the_o body_n which_o word_n he_o adjoin_v with_o as_o much_o confidence_n to_o the_o text_n as_o if_o they_o may_v be_v there_o find_v write_v and_o be_v part_n of_o the_o text_n itself_o so_o as_o unwary_a and_o unexamine_v reader_n may_v soon_o be_v mistake_v thereupon_o in_o what_o manner_n and_o to_o what_o purpose_n solomon_n may_v intend_v this_o return_n of_o soul_n to_o god_n have_v be_v before_o dispute_v and_o i_o still_o confide_v that_o mr._n w._n and_o his_o party_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o these_o word_n of_o solomon_n intend_v the_o soul_n of_o dead_a person_n go_v before_o god_n to_o judgement_n as_o here_o he_o have_v without_o any_o hesitation_n deliver_v it_o and_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o his_o answer_n have_v very_o little_o blunt_v the_o edge_n of_o our_o present_a objection_n i_o observe_v it_o as_o a_o art_n in_o dispute_v that_o it_o may_v be_v advantageous_a to_o grant_v in_o a_o easy_a and_o transient_a fashion_n such_o objection_n as_o man_n find_v themselves_o utter_o unable_a to_o answer_v and_o i_o think_v mr._n w._n have_v use_v this_o art_n in_o transient_o grant_v the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o objection_n viz._n that_o the_o scripture_n do_v frequent_o refer_v the_o expectation_n of_o reward_n or_o punishment_n after_o this_o life_n and_o unto_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o whereas_o i_o have_v say_v before_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n in_o scripture_n of_o such_o expectation_n at_o or_o soon_o after_o the_o time_n of_o man_n death_n he_o give_v we_o here_o three_o of_o the_o most_o pregnant_a instance_n which_o he_o can_v find_v in_o scripture_n for_o prove_v that_o reward_n and_o punishment_n be_v bestow_v by_o god_n at_o the_o time_n of_o man_n death_n but_o the_o force_n of_o these_o instance_n have_v before_o be_v obstruct_v by_o those_o answer_n which_o have_v be_v several_o give_v they_o in_o their_o proper_a place_n i_o be_o not_o without_o some_o temptation_n of_o draw_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n a_o catalogue_n of_o such_o text_n as_o do_v with_o great_a evidence_n and_o strength_n set_v forth_o and_o prove_v that_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v not_o alone_o the_o principal_n but_o the_o only_a time_n whereat_o or_o wherein_o recompense_n future_a to_o this_o life_n be_v warrantable_o and_o certain_o to_o be_v expect_v by_o mankind_n but_o because_o i_o have_v say_v much_o and_o quote_v divers_a text_n of_o scripture_n upon_o that_o subject_a before_o and_o be_o now_o willing_a to_o save_v myself_o and_o my_o reader_n the_o tedium_n of_o such_o a_o long_a repetition_n i_o will_v refer_v the_o examiner_n of_o this_o objection_n unto_o those_o text_n which_o have_v before_o be_v quote_v to_o that_o purpose_n and_o to_o such_o other_o as_o themselves_o may_v meet_v with_o upon_o the_o perusal_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o with_o this_o round_a number_n of_o ten_o the_o objection_n which_o i_o make_v against_o mr._n w_n opinion_n out_o of_o scripture_n shall_v be_v finish_v yet_o i_o far_o intend_v to_o add_v thereunto_o two_o or_o three_o objection_n against_o mr._n w_n opinion_n derive_v from_o natural_a reason_n and_o the_o experience_n of_o men._n and_o first_o i_o begin_v from_o the_o nature_n and_o composition_n of_o the_o humane_a person_n and_o thereupon_o i_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n principal_o and_o absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o subsistence_n and_o life_n of_o the_o humane_a person_n viz._n blood_n breath_n and_o nutriment_n and_o thereupon_o do_v agree_v with_o moses_n that_o the_o life_n the_o animal_n be_v in_o the_o blood_n or_o that_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o life_n thereof_o who_o inflame_a particle_n be_v the_o spirit_n which_o act_n the_o person_n and_o as_o well_o the_o head_n as_o the_o member_n so_o long_o as_o life_n continue_v in_o the_o body_n next_o to_o which_o the_o breath_n have_v a_o principal_a and_o absolute_o necessary_a faculty_n and_o power_n of_o fan_v and_o inflame_v such_o particle_n of_o the_o blood_n as_o be_v employ_v in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o body_n and_o for_o refrigerate_v the_o internal_a part_n of_o the_o body_n with_o a_o perpetual_a refreshment_n which_o keep_v the_o paristaltick_a motion_n always_o in_o action_n among_o the_o inward_a and_o most_o vital_a part_n of_o the_o body_n whence_o daily_a experience_n assure_v we_o that_o by_o stop_v of_o the_o breath_n but_o for_o some_o few_o moment_n the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n become_v absolute_o suffocate_v and_o extinguish_v and_o without_o breath_n no_o humane_a art_n or_o power_n can_v prolong_v the_o life_n of_o the_o person_n or_o other_o animal_n whatsoever_o concern_v nutriment_n it_o be_v only_o so_o far_o necessary_a to_o the_o life_n of_o the_o creature_n as_o the_o blood_n thereof_o waste_v and_o be_v consume_v by_o the_o circular_a continual_a motion_n and_o the_o inflammation_n thereof_o in_o some_o long_o continue_v and_o weaken_v disease_n the_o motion_n of_o the_o blood_n have_v be_v so_o weak_a and_o the_o inflammation_n thereof_o
place_n where_o he_o have_v twice_o before_o propound_v they_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o in_o this_o discourse_n he_o have_v add_v any_o new_a argument_n to_o those_o which_o be_v produce_v in_o his_o former_a treatise_n so_o as_o there_o be_v no_o new_a proof_n propound_v in_o this_o triumph_n whence_o i_o be_o apt_a thereupon_o to_o surmise_v that_o he_o do_v triumphum_fw-la canere_fw-la ante_fw-la victoriam_fw-la and_o because_o his_o triumphal_a building_n seem_v to_o be_v principal_o found_v upon_o the_o two_o beforenamed_n assertion_n i_o collect_v that_o if_o the_o rain_n descend_v violent_o upon_o it_o the_o wind_n shake_v it_o the_o flood_n happen_v to_o beat_v upon_o it_o this_o triumphal_a edifice_n will_v be_v more_o likely_a to_o fall_v than_o to_o stand_v because_o the_o ground_n upon_o which_o it_o be_v raise_v seem_v over_o soft_a and_o sandy_a for_o the_o support_n thereof_o and_o for_o that_o the_o foundation_n of_o it_o be_v not_o dig_v deep_o enough_o by_o such_o a_o search_n into_o the_o scripture_n as_o may_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o doctrine_n be_v build_v upon_o a_o strong_a stream_n or_o clear_a current_n of_o scripture_n testimony_n somewhat_o apparent_o or_o clear_o attest_v the_o truth_n thereof_o in_o some_o such_o place_n where_o there_o be_v a_o design_n of_o teach_v concern_v the_o future_a state_n of_o man_n after_o death_n i_o do_v not_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v a_o design_n of_o speak_v of_o such_o a_o future_a state_n in_o any_o of_o the_o four_o text_n last_v before_o quote_v of_o solomon_n st._n matthew_n and_o st._n luke_n and_o therefore_o i_o do_v not_o find_v any_o great_a strength_n of_o conviction_n in_o they_o i_o shall_v therefore_o pass_v over_o these_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o mr._n wadsworth_n be_v discourse_n of_o faith_n triumph_n without_o speak_v any_o far_a thereunto_o because_o it_o seem_v not_o great_o material_a towards_o the_o far_a proof_n of_o that_o question_n which_o be_v now_o dispute_v between_o we_o resolve_v here_o to_o finish_v my_o observation_n upon_o this_o author_n with_o a_o hearty_a bene_fw-la valeas_fw-la to_o my_o intelligent_a reader_n finis_fw-la observation_n upon_o dr._n charlton_n treatise_n entitle_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o humane_a soul_n demonstrate_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n in_o two_o dialogue_n 4to_o london_n print_v 1657._o his_o first_o dialogue_n and_o a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o second_o be_v employ_v and_o spend_v in_o introduction_n and_o ceremony_n which_o last_v and_o continue_v till_o page_n 78._o of_o his_o book_n and_o there_o he_o say_v that_o the_o consideration_n which_o he_o intend_v to_o allege_v for_o prove_v the_o soul_n immortality_n shall_v be_v either_o natural_a or_o moral_a his_o first_o argument_n be_v this_o he_o say_v the_o reasonable_a soul_n of_o man_n be_v immaterial_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v immortal_a p._n 85._o to_o prove_v the_o soul_n immateriality_n he_o say_v the_o action_n of_o man_n as_o a_o cogitative_a and_o intellectual_a essence_n be_v of_o so_o noble_a and_o divine_a a_o strain_n as_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v be_v perform_v by_o a_o mere_a material_a agent_n or_o corporeal_a substance_n however_o dispose_v qualify_v or_o modify_v to_o this_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v the_o common_a objection_n against_o the_o soul_n materiality_n viz._n man_n do_v not_o understand_v the_o quomodo_fw-la how_o the_o abstract_a action_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o the_o reflex_n action_n of_o it_o upon_o itself_o can_v be_v perform_v by_o matter_n and_o motion_n never_o so_o fit_o modify_v and_o organise_v and_o therefore_o our_o doctor_n in_o this_o place_n walk_v in_o the_o common_a tread_v and_o pretend_v to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o power_n in_o such_o matter_n and_o motion_n by_o the_o introduction_n of_o a_o intelligent_a self-subsisting_a spirit_n into_o the_o person_n for_o the_o effect_n of_o such_o operation_n in_o man_n not_o enough_o consider_v the_o wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n the_o great_a architect_n of_o the_o microcosm_n who_o can_v by_o matter_n and_o motion_n fit_o organise_v modify_v and_o move_v produce_v such_o act_n and_o power_n as_o man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o comprehend_v the_o quomodo_fw-la of_o and_o therefore_o to_o their_o reason_n such_o thing_n may_v seem_v impossible_a to_o be_v do_v which_o by_o the_o wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n may_v be_v easy_o effect_v and_o perform_v without_o the_o agency_n of_o such_o intelligent_a spirit_n as_o man_n have_v common_o use_v to_o imagine_v p._n 88_o the_o doctor_n say_v by_o discourse_n of_o reason_n we_o soon_o come_v certain_o to_o know_v that_o the_o magnitude_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v at_o least_o 160_o time_n great_a than_o that_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o here_o i_o pretend_v to_o doubt_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o doctor_n be_v knowledge_n concern_v this_o point_n from_o this_o page_n to_o page_n 100_o the_o doctor_n argue_v whether_o the_o intellect_n can_v work_v without_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o fancy_n a_o question_n propound_v by_o aristotle_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la but_o both_o there_o and_o here_o that_o question_n be_v leave_v undetermined_a p._n 102._o the_o doctor_n say_v the_o intellect_n do_v frequent_o reflect_v upon_o itself_o and_o understand_v its_o own_o intelligence_n this_o i_o do_v not_o permit_v to_o pass_v for_o a_o truth_n if_o we_o take_v the_o intellect_n for_o a_o distinct_a thing_n from_o the_o man_n conceive_v that_o the_o intellect_n as_o well_o as_o the_o fantasy_n be_v power_n and_o faculty_n of_o the_o man_n and_o that_o neither_o of_o they_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n of_o themselves_o but_o that_o all_o which_o either_o or_o both_o of_o they_o do_v be_v act_n of_o the_o person_n in_o who_o they_o reside_v and_o that_o they_o be_v both_o of_o they_o submit_v to_o the_o guidance_n and_o government_n of_o the_o person_n and_o the_o totum_fw-la of_o that_o power_n of_o which_o they_o be_v but_o a_o part_n so_o as_o to_o speak_v proper_o and_o true_o we_o must_v say_v that_o the_o man_n can_v considerate_o reflect_v upon_o the_o act_n and_o power_n of_o his_o intellect_n fantasy_n judgement_n and_o memory_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o i_o shall_v easy_o grant_v but_o that_o which_o i_o think_v lie_n upon_o the_o doctor_n and_o his_o party_n to_o prove_v be_v the_o bare_a intellect_n separate_v from_o the_o person_n can_v reflect_v upon_o itself_o or_o do_v any_o other_o action_n whatsoever_o p._n 108._o the_o doctor_n say_v that_o whatsoever_o can_v frame_v abstract_v notion_n and_o form_n universals_z must_v be_v above_o matter_n and_o be_v immaterial_a but_o the_o soul_n and_o mind_n of_o man_n can_v act_v in_o this_o sort_n ergo_fw-la this_o soul_n must_v be_v immaterial_a in_o this_o argument_n i_o deny_v his_o major_n and_o say_v that_o the_o man_n himself_o who_o be_v a_o material_a agent_n can_v form_v abstractive_a notion_n and_o from_o singulars_n and_o general_n can_v extract_v and_o frame_v universals_z and_o that_o the_o intellect_n without_o the_o man_n can_v perform_v no_o such_o matter_n nor_o be_v nor_o act_n in_o any_o kind_n whatsoever_o p._n 112._o here_o he_o quote_v a_o book_n write_v by_o hieronimus_fw-la rorarius_n a_o learned_a prelate_n as_o a_o collection_n of_o argument_n common_o urge_v to_o prove_v that_o many_o brute_n animal_n have_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n as_o well_o as_o man_n himself_o have_v p._n 116._o here_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o man_n do_v not_o know_v the_o intimate_v nature_n of_o so_o much_o as_o the_o small_a plant_n which_o grow_v upon_o the_o ground_n and_o therefore_o i_o say_v we_o be_v like_a to_o fall_v much_o short_a of_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o humane_a soul_n with_o such_o certainty_n as_o be_v to_o be_v desire_v p._n 118._o the_o doctor_n say_v the_o intellect_n be_v conversant_a about_o spiritual_a being_n both_o of_o good_a and_o other_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o be_v immaterial_a i_o answer_v as_o before_o the_o intellect_n can_v do_v nothing_o but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o power_n and_o faculty_n of_o the_o person_n without_o which_o i_o do_v not_o agree_v that_o it_o have_v either_o be_v or_o action_n p._n 123._o the_o doctor_n here_o say_v that_o the_o old_a philosopher_n obtain_v a_o certain_a knowledge_n that_o there_o be_v spirit_n by_o the_o regular_a motion_n of_o the_o heavenly_a body_n which_o they_o think_v can_v not_o be_v maintain_v without_o the_o assistance_n and_o government_n of_o intelligent_a immaterial_a spirit_n but_o i_o think_v they_o be_v as_o much_o deceive_v in_o their_o own_o opinion_n as_o our_o doctor_n seem_v to_o be_v in_o his_o opinion_n of_o the_o soul_n immateriality_n p._n 123._o it_o be_v object_v against_o the_o doctor_n that_o when_o the_o fancy_n be_v disturb_v the_o intellect_n can_v act_v with_o strength_n or_o
intent_n thereof_o and_o even_o to_o have_v exterminate_v the_o same_o out_o of_o the_o apprehension_n and_o memory_n of_o such_o men._n and_o hereupon_o i_o do_v again_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v very_o suitable_a to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n and_o his_o equitable_a deal_n with_o man_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o distribution_n of_o reward_n and_o punishment_n after_o this_o life_n and_o i_o do_v with_o great_a assurance_n believe_v that_o the_o same_o will_v fall_v out_o according_o not_o bestow_v those_o reward_n and_o punishment_n upon_o soul_n subsist_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n but_o that_o rather_o as_o our_o lord_n himself_o tell_v we_o john_n 6._o those_o who_o fear_n god_n and_o work_v righteousness_n shall_v by_o christ_n be_v raise_v up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n in_o their_o full_a compositum_fw-la of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o in_o their_o own_o person_n shall_v receive_v reward_n according_a to_o their_o work_n do_v and_o their_o faith_n profess_v in_o this_o world_n and_o that_o the_o like_a measure_n shall_v be_v deal_v to_o the_o wicked_a at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o last_o day_n who_o punishment_n shall_v be_v equal_o distribute_v to_o their_o person_n as_o be_v before_o say_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o former_a raise_v and_o righteous_a person_n p._n 156._o the_o doctor_n say_v he_o can_v but_o wonder_v that_o plato_n have_v assert_v god_n to_o be_v a_o mind_n divine_a and_o incorporeal_a shall_v contradict_v himself_o in_o affirm_v that_o man_n soul_n be_v a_o particle_n take_v from_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n himself_o he_o will_v not_o engulph_n himself_o in_o the_o bottomless_a sea_n of_o difficulty_n concern_v the_o original_a and_o extraduction_n of_o man_n soul_n but_o he_o conceive_v the_o soul_n can_v be_v produce_v from_o matter_n because_o it_o be_v immaterial_a but_o however_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o it_o have_v its_o beginning_n and_o origine_fw-la with_o the_o body_n and_o yet_o be_v incorporeal_a it_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o perish_v with_o it_o p._n 159._o he_o confess_v a_o great_a decay_n of_o intellect_n in_o man_n very_a old_a age_n but_o say_v that_o decay_n grow_v from_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o fancy_n and_o imagination_n and_o the_o organ_n thereof_o and_o not_o from_o the_o decay_n of_o the_o intellect_n or_o soul_n itself_o answer_v i_o say_v it_o seem_v rather_o to_o grow_v from_o the_o heaviness_n and_o unaptness_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o old_a people_n to_o be_v so_o vigorous_o inflame_v and_o act_v as_o it_o use_v to_o be_v in_o their_o young_a year_n and_o great_a strength_n of_o their_o body_n and_o concoction_n p._n 173._o the_o doctor_n say_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o when_o at_o death_n the_o soul_n be_v breathe_v into_o the_o air_n that_o the_o air_n shall_v be_v thereby_o animate_v because_o than_o it_o shall_v act_v without_o the_o mediation_n of_o any_o organ_n at_o all_o but_o he_o assert_n that_o neither_o in_o the_o air_n nor_o any_o other_o body_n whatever_o can_v the_o soul_n either_o meet_v with_o or_o create_v those_o disposition_n that_o be_v requisite_a to_o vital_a information_n p._n 174._o he_o say_v the_o soul_n make_v use_v of_o the_o vital_a spirit_n as_o servants_z for_o the_o effect_n of_o life_n sense_n and_o motion_n i_o say_v nature_n make_v use_v of_o they_o for_o the_o effect_v life_n sense_n motion_n understanding_n memory_n and_o all_o other_o power_n of_o cogitation_n whatsoever_o p._n 180._o the_o doctor_n say_v as_o to_o the_o particular_a or_o manner_n of_o the_o soul_n knowledge_n after_o death_n i_o remit_v you_o to_o sir_n k._n digby_n sublime_a speculation_n concern_v the_o condition_n of_o a_o separate_a soul_n in_o which_o though_o you_o may_v not_o meet_v with_o such_o satisfaction_n as_o you_o expect_v yet_o you_o will_v meet_v with_o more_o than_o i_o can_v now_o give_v you_o without_o repeat_v his_o notion_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o i_o have_v peruse_v those_o notion_n without_o meet_v with_o any_o satisfaction_n at_o all_o in_o they_o p._n 183._o the_o doctor_n say_v that_o the_o cement_n which_o join_v the_o body_n and_o soul_n together_o be_v the_o blood_n especial_o the_o spiritual_a and_o most_o refine_a part_n thereof_o and_o he_o quote_v a_o say_v of_o critius_n sentire_fw-la maxim_n proprinus_fw-la esse_fw-la anima_fw-la atque_fw-la hoc_fw-la in_o esse_fw-la propter_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la naturam_fw-la p._n 184._o he_o say_v the_o blood_n be_v the_o first_o pact_n of_o the_o body_n that_o be_v generate_v and_o move_v and_o the_o soul_n be_v excite_v and_o kindle_v first_o from_o the_o blood_n and_o the_o blood_n be_v that_o in_o which_o the_o operation_n vegitative_n and_o sensitive_a do_v first_o manifest_v themselves_o the_o doctor_n say_v that_o he_o think_v it_o likely_a that_o the_o soul_n have_v its_o first_o and_o perhaps_o principal_a residence_n in_o the_o blood_n and_o that_o blood_n by_o circulation_n flow_v like_o a_o river_n of_o live_a water_n round_o the_o body_n penetrate_v into_o and_o irrigate_a the_o substance_n of_o all_o the_o part_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n communicate_v to_o they_o both_o heat_n and_o life_n so_o as_o the_o soul_n have_v its_o principal_a residence_n in_o the_o blood_n in_o respect_n thereof_o may_v very_o well_o be_v conceive_v to_o be_v tota_n in_o toto_fw-la &_o tota_fw-la in_o qualibet_fw-la parte_fw-la so_o as_o there_o be_v a_o intimate_v presence_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o blood_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n a_o conjunction_n of_o they_o together_o 169._o the_o dr._n say_v that_o in_o the_o progression_n towards_o death_n the_o vital_a heat_n or_o flame_n be_v either_o almost_o suffocate_v by_o putrefaction_n of_o the_o blood_n the_o only_a fuel_n by_o which_o it_o be_v maintain_v in_o disease_n or_o exhaust_v by_o old_a age_n go_v out_o like_o a_o lamp_n by_o degree_n cease_v first_o to_o enliven_v or_o irradiate_a the_o part_n that_o be_v most_o remote_a from_o the_o focus_fw-la or_o heart_n and_o then_o fail_v in_o its_o conserve_n influence_n more_o and_o more_o till_o at_o length_n suffer_v a_o extinction_n in_o the_o very_a heart_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o socket_n it_o leave_v that_o also_o cold_a and_o lifeless_a so_o that_o death_n be_v as_o a_o extinction_n only_o of_o the_o vital_a flame_n not_o of_o the_o soul_n i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o extinction_n of_o that_o vital_a flame_n which_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o soul_n or_o spirit_n or_o the_o first_o principal_a of_o life_n and_o motion_n in_o the_o person_n i_o think_v that_o by_o the_o doctor_n be_v word_n in_o this_o last_o quotation_n he_o seem_v full_o to_o agree_v with_o what_o i_o have_v often_o repeat_v that_o the_o total_a extinction_n of_o the_o vital_a flame_n in_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n and_o the_o very_a thing_n which_o turn_v that_o which_o be_v the_o live_a body_n into_o a_o dead_a carcase_n whence_o he_o say_v that_o death_n be_v a_o extinction_n of_o the_o vital_a flame_n and_o yet_o deny_v this_o to_o be_v a_o extinguishment_n of_o the_o soul_n whence_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o maintain_v the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o soul_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o person_n although_o the_o nature_n and_o reason_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o follow_v convince_v he_o not_o so_o to_o do_v or_o that_o he_o find_v any_o natural_a need_n of_o his_o so_o do_v but_o because_o he_o think_v it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o divine_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n have_v a_o separate_a subsistence_n after_o death_n of_o the_o person_n and_o therefore_o be_v immortal_a and_o that_o he_o stand_v so_o persuade_v from_o scripture_n ground_n he_o testify_v pag._n 185._o where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o immortal_a substance_n and_o that_o its_o immortality_n be_v not_o only_o credible_a by_o faith_n or_o upon_o authority_n divine_a but_o also_o demonstrable_a by_o reason_n or_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n from_o these_o word_n i_o collect_v that_o his_o belief_n of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n be_v ground_v first_o upon_o faith_n and_o divine_a authority_n as_o he_o think_v and_o be_v thus_o full_o persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o opinion_n he_o set_v himself_o on_o work_n to_o maintain_v it_o by_o such_o deduction_n as_o he_o be_v able_a to_o make_v from_o the_o principle_n of_o nature_n and_o reason_n his_o performance_n wherein_o have_v before_o be_v examine_v and_o show_v not_o be_v of_o so_o great_a weight_n as_o he_o perhaps_o conceive_v they_o to_o be_v the_o treatise_n now_o examine_v be_v publish_v so_o long_o ago_o that_o i_o doubt_v before_o this_o time_n his_o flame_n of_o life_n have_v be_v extinguish_v or_o that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v
say_v any_o more_o to_o it_o p._n 171._o six_o he_o object_n against_o his_o own_o opinion_n that_o the_o scripture_n make_v frequent_a mention_n of_o reward_n and_o punishment_n to_o be_v give_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n but_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o such_o recompense_n to_o be_v give_v soon_o after_o death_n or_o between_o that_o and_o the_o resurrection_n this_o i_o own_o to_o be_v a_o very_a strong_a objection_n against_o mr._n w_n opinion_n and_o do_v intend_v to_o make_v it_o one_o of_o i_o which_o i_o mean_v to_o deliver_v at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o catalogue_n of_o objection_n and_o there_o further_o to_o consider_v his_o answer_n to_o it_o p._n 172._o seven_o mr._n w._n object_n against_o himself_o if_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n pass_v their_o trial_n as_o soon_o as_o their_o body_n be_v dead_a what_o need_v any_o other_o day_n of_o judgement_n will_v christ_n try_v man_n after_o sentence_n this_o i_o think_v to_o be_v a_o strong_a objection_n and_o therefore_o i_o mean_v to_o repeat_v it_o again_o and_o there_o to_o consider_v his_o answer_n p._n 175._o eight_o he_o object_n against_o himself_o when_o christ_n which_o be_v our_o life_n shall_v appear_v then_o shall_v w●_n appear_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n i_o purpose_v to_o add_v this_o text_n to_o other_o which_o i_o mean_v to_o quote_v against_o his_o opinion_n afterward_o and_o there_o to_o consider_v his_o answer_n p._n 177._o a_o nine_o objection_n which_o he_o raise_v against_o himself_o be_v from_o 2_o tim._n 4.8_o henceforth_o there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o glory_n this_o i_o think_v to_o be_v a_o strong_a objection_n fit_a to_o be_v again_o repeat_v and_o there_o his_o answer_n shall_v be_v consider_v p._n 179._o his_o ten_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o king_n hezekiah_n prayer_n in_o isaiah_n this_o i_o think_v to_o be_v strong_a and_o therefore_o to_o be_v repeat_v and_o his_o answer_n to_o be_v there_o consider_v p._n 181._o his_o eleven_o objection_n from_o eccles_n 9.5_o the_o dead_a know_v not_o any_o thing_n seem_v strong_a and_o therefore_o again_o to_o be_v repeat_v and_o his_o answer_n there_o consider_v p._n 182._o twelve_o mr._n w._n object_n against_o himself_o the_o word_n of_o david_n psalm_n 7.1_o 2._o save_v i_o lest_o my_o enemy_n tear_v my_o soul_n like_o a_o lyon_n here_o i_o think_v be_v the_o same_o intent_n as_o if_o david_n have_v say_v lest_o he_o tear_v i_o in_o piece_n like_o a_o lion_n put_v here_o the_o word_n soul_n to_o signify_v person_n therefore_o i_o think_v this_o objection_n to_o be_v very_o weak_a and_o as_o such_o i_o leave_v it_o p._n 183._o mr._n w._n take_v his_o thirteen_o objection_n from_o 1_o cor._n 15.18_o if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o than_o they_o also_o that_o be_v fall_v asleep_a in_o christ_n be_v perish_v this_o text_n and_o chapter_n make_v a_o very_a strong_a objection_n against_o mr._n w_n opinion_n and_o therefore_o it_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o repeat_v and_o his_o answer_n there_o consider_v p._n 187._o mr._n w_n fourteen_o objection_n be_v raise_v from_o 1_o tim._n 6.16_o god_n only_o have_v immortality_n dwell_v in_o light_n i_o think_v this_o to_o be_v a_o very_a weak_a objection_n against_o mr._n w_n opinion_n and_o therefore_o i_o pass_v it_o over_o without_o any_o further_a consideration_n in_o this_o examination_n of_o mr._n w_n fourteen_o objection_n we_o have_v find_v one_o half_a or_o seven_o of_o they_o to_o be_v of_o small_a force_n for_o the_o overthrow_v mr._n w_n opinion_n and_o i_o observe_v that_o in_o his_o propound_v divers_a of_o the_o other_o seven_o which_o be_v strong_a against_o he_o he_o do_v it_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o their_o strength_n seem_v to_o be_v much_o impair_v by_o his_o manner_n of_o deliver_v they_o and_o therefore_o i_o design_v to_o frame_v another_o series_n of_o objection_n against_o his_o opinion_n and_o to_o place_n among_o they_o the_o seven_o objection_n of_o mr._n w'_v which_o i_o approve_v and_o to_o consider_v therein_o the_o answer_n which_o he_o have_v give_v to_o they_o not_o yet_o meaning_n to_o follow_v mr._n w_n order_n of_o propound_v they_o but_o i_o intend_v to_o offer_v all_o my_o objection_n take_v from_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o several_a time_n wherein_o they_o be_v deliver_v first_o i_o object_n against_o mr._n w_n opinion_n from_o gen._n 9.4_o flesh_n with_o the_o life_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o blood_n thereof_o shall_v you_o not_o eat_v and_o sure_o your_o blood_n of_o your_o life_n will_v i_o require_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o every_o beast_n will_v i_o require_v it_o and_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o every_o man_n brother_n will_v i_o require_v the_o life_n of_o man_n who_o so_o shed_v man_n blood_n by_o man_n shall_v his_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n make_v he_o man._n it_o seem_v to_o appear_v from_o the_o word_n of_o this_o text_n that_o the_o term_n blood_n and_o life_n have_v a_o convercibility_n one_o with_o another_o so_o as_o no_o blood_n no_o life_n and_o the_o shed_n of_o man_n blood_n be_v the_o kill_n of_o he_o and_o it_o be_v therefore_o make_v a_o crime_n of_o the_o high_a nature_n because_o the_o shed_n of_o man_n blood_n destroy_v the_o image_n of_o god_n wherein_o man_n be_v make_v whence_o i_o conceive_v man_n to_o be_v god_n image_n in_o his_o whole_a person_n who_o blood_n may_v be_v shed_v and_o not_o only_o in_o a_o particular_a part_n of_o he_o which_o mr._n w._n maintain_v must_v be_v his_o soul_n the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n say_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v the_o life_n thereof_o and_o experience_n convince_v that_o all_o thing_n that_o have_v life_n have_v a_o sort_n of_o spirit_n for_o the_o maintain_v thereof_o as_o grass_n herb_n plant_n tree_n infect_v fish_n fowl_n brute_n and_o men._n in_o plant_n or_o tree_n if_o we_o pare_v off_o the_o skin_n or_o bark_n and_o thereby_o stop_v the_o ascent_n of_o the_o sap_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o plant_n the_o plant_n will_v die_v from_o that_o place_n upward_o because_o this_o sap_n or_o spirit_n of_o life_n will_v be_v obstruct_v in_o its_o ascent_n to_o the_o high_a part_n of_o the_o plant_n and_o among_o brute_n or_o man_n if_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o blood_n be_v obstruct_v those_o part_n to_o which_o the_o blood_n can_v come_v with_o freedom_n decay_n wither_v and_o become_v of_o little_a or_o no_o use_n to_o the_o creature_n the_o text_n say_v flesh_n with_o the_o life_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o blood_n thereof_o and_o experience_n show_v that_o the_o life_n exhale_v with_o the_o blood_n so_o as_o no_o blood_n no_o life_n whence_o i_o collect_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o brute_n and_o man_n consist_v and_o reside_v in_o the_o blood_n and_o the_o inflame_a and_o glow_a spirit_n thereof_o and_o thence_o it_o seem_v that_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o plant_n be_v the_o sap_n thereof_o so_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o animal_n be_v the_o blood_n kindle_v and_o glow_a and_o the_o inflame_a particle_n thereof_o and_o so_o our_o text_n say_v flesh_n with_o the_o life_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o blood_n thereof_o and_o from_o the_o premise_n i_o argue_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n be_v in_o his_o blood_n and_o the_o inflame_a particle_n of_o it_o and_o experience_v evidence_n that_o by_o like_a blood_n and_o spirit_n the_o brute_n be_v act_v both_o in_o their_o local_a and_o peristaltic_a motion_n their_o sense_n of_o bear_v see_v etc._n etc._n their_o affection_n of_o lust_n wrath_n and_o fear_v and_o those_o degree_n which_o they_o have_v of_o fantasy_n choice_n and_o memory_n and_o i_o pretend_v hence_o to_o infer_v that_o if_o in_o the_o blood_n there_o be_v a_o spirit_n of_o life_n which_o can_v act_v the_o brute_n in_o their_o motion_n sensation_n and_o passion_n to_o as_o high_a a_o degree_n as_o man_n be_v act_v in_o those_o performance_n and_o can_v act_v they_o to_o low_a degree_n of_o fancy_n choice_n and_o memory_n it_o seem_v a_o like_a spirit_n may_v probable_o act_v humane_a person_n in_o all_o these_o faculty_n and_o to_o much_o high_a degree_n in_o those_o of_o judgement_n fantasy_n and_o memory_n because_o in_o such_o person_n these_o spirit_n meet_v with_o organ_n of_o great_a perfection_n and_o better_o fit_v for_o the_o performance_n thereof_o and_o hereunto_o i_o apply_v the_o inject_n of_o brutal_a blood_n into_o a_o humane_a body_n which_o experience_n prove_v will_v act_v that_o body_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v act_v before_o by_o its_o own_o blood_n because_o the_o organ_n in_o which_o it_o work_v be_v better_o suit_v to_o such_o purpose_n than_o those_o of_o the_o
animal_n wherein_o it_o act_v before_o and_o it_o seem_v consequent_a that_o if_o the_o blood_n and_o its_o particle_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n and_o can_v act_v all_o his_o faculty_n as_o before_o have_v be_v express_v then_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o imagine_v the_o be_v of_o a_o immaterial_a intelligent_a spirit_n in_o man_n quia_fw-la frustra_fw-la fit_a per_fw-la plura_fw-la quod_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la per_fw-la pautiora_fw-la &_o natura_fw-la nihil_fw-la facit_fw-la frustra_fw-la wherefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o the_o blood_n and_o its_o particle_n inflame_v or_o glow_a be_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o man_n as_o well_o as_o in_o brute_n and_o that_o there_o neither_o needs_o nor_o probable_o be_v in_o he_o such_o a_o immaterial_a intelligent_a spirit_n as_o mr._n w._n and_o those_o who_o maintain_v his_o tenet_n have_v suppose_v in_o confirmation_n of_o what_o god_n say_v before_o to_o noah_n we_o read_v levit._fw-la 7.11_o the_o life_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v in_o the_o blood_n and_o i_o have_v give_v it_o to_o you_o upon_o the_o altar_n to_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o the_o soul_n intend_v yourselves_o verse_n 13._o he_o that_o hunt_v or_o kill_v a_o beast_n or_o fowl_n he_o shall_v even_o pour_v out_o the_o blood_n thereof_o and_o cover_v it_o with_o dust_n for_o it_o be_v the_o life_n of_o all_o flesh_n the_o blood_n of_o it_o be_v for_o the_o life_n thereof_o second_o i_o object_n against_o mr._n w_n opinion_n from_o job_n 3.11_o why_o die_v i_o not_o from_o the_o womb_n why_o do_v the_o knee_n prevent_v i_o or_o the_o breast_n that_o i_o shall_v suck_v for_o now_o shall_v i_o have_v lie_v be_v quiet_a and_o have_v sleep_v or_o as_o if_o a_o hide_a untimely_a birth_n i_o have_v not_o be_v verse_n 17._o in_o death_n the_o wicked_a cease_v from_o trouble_v and_o there_o the_o weary_a be_v at_o rest_n there_o the_o prisoner_n rest_v together_o and_o hear_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o oppressor_n and_o the_o servant_n be_v free_a from_o his_o master_n this_o text_n declare_v to_o we_o job_n opinion_n concern_v the_o state_n of_o dead_a person_n they_o all_o sleep_n and_o rest_v together_o in_o death_n great_a and_o small_a strong_a and_o weak_a prisoner_n and_o freeman_n servant_n and_o master_n death_n reduce_v they_o all_o to_o a_o like_a estate_n of_o freedom_n peace_n and_o rest_n without_o any_o disturbance_n among_o they_o he_o make_v no_o mention_n here_o or_o in_o any_o other_o place_n of_o reward_n or_o punishment_n until_o the_o resurrection_n and_o then_o he_o profess_v to_o expect_v to_o see_v his_o redeemer_n with_o the_o eye_n which_o he_o have_v but_o concern_v a_o intermediate_n state_n he_o be_v utter_o silent_a which_o it_o seem_v likely_a he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v if_o he_o have_v know_v of_o such_o a_o intermediate_n state_n of_o soul_n as_o mr._n w._n and_o his_o party_n pretend_v to_o maintain_v we_o see_v that_o job_n seem_v to_o make_v death_n a_o rest_n from_o all_o such_o suffering_n as_o be_v know_v to_o he_o and_o have_v he_o know_v or_o believe_v such_o reward_n after_o death_n as_o mr._n w._n pretend_v we_o may_v reasonable_o expect_v he_o shall_v have_v make_v mention_n of_o they_o and_o from_o his_o silence_n about_o reward_n and_o his_o opinion_n of_o rest_n from_o suffering_n i_o conclude_v he_o know_v of_o no_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v find_v of_o man_n soon_o after_o their_o death_n and_o i_o infer_v from_o this_o argument_n that_o the_o soul_n separate_a subsistence_n and_o the_o great_a reward_n and_o punishment_n thereof_o to_o be_v expect_v immediate_o after_o death_n be_v unknown_a to_o job_n and_o the_o man_n of_o his_o time_n and_o be_v therefore_o a_o late_a opinion_n take_v up_o and_o yet_o general_o accept_v in_o the_o time_n which_o come_v after_o he_o and_o want_n much_o of_o that_o authority_n which_o its_o derivation_n from_o the_o primitive_a time_n of_o the_o world_n may_v have_v give_v it_o a_o three_o objection_n against_o mr._n w_n doctrine_n i_o take_v from_o king_n david_n psalm_n 146.2_o put_v not_o your_o trust_n in_o prince_n or_o in_o any_o child_n of_o man_n for_o when_o the_o breath_n of_o man_n go_v forth_o he_o shall_v turn_v again_o to_o his_o earth_n and_o then_o all_o his_o thought_n perish_v psal_n 49.10_o wise_a man_n die_v and_o perish_v together_o as_o well_o as_o the_o ignorant_a and_o foolish_a verse_n 12._o man_n will_v not_o abide_v in_o honour_n see_v he_o may_v be_v compare_v to_o the_o beast_n that_o perish_v verse_n 20._o he_o repeat_v again_o man_n be_v in_o honour_n have_v no_o understanding_n but_o be_v compare_v unto_o the_o beast_n that_o perish_v in_o the_o first_o prove_v text_n david_n say_v when_o the_o breath_n of_o man_n go_v forth_o he_o shall_v turn_v again_o to_o his_o earth_n whence_o his_o son_n solomon_n may_v have_v take_v his_o say_v then_o shall_v the_o dust_n return_v to_o the_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o here_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o david_n breath_n which_o at_o death_n go_v forth_o intend_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o solomon_n spirit_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o but_o thereunto_o david_n add_v that_o when_o this_o breath_n be_v go_v forth_o and_o thereby_o the_o man_n be_v return_v to_o his_o earth_n all_o his_o thought_n perish_v whence_o it_o seem_v there_o be_v not_o one_o think_v leave_v in_o he_o but_o we_o know_v that_o the_o faculty_n of_o think_v can_v never_o continue_v without_o some_o thought_n arise_v in_o it_o and_o therefore_o if_o all_o a_o man_n thought_n perish_v with_o his_o death_n i_o infer_v his_o faculty_n of_o think_v must_v do_v so_o too_o which_o it_o can_v do_v if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o separate_o subsist_v intelligent_a soul_n in_o man_n as_o mr._n w._n strong_o assert_n and_o if_o my_o opposer_n shall_v contend_v that_o the_o thought_n which_o be_v here_o say_v to_o perish_v do_v mean_v the_o intention_n and_o design_n of_o the_o person_n when_o alive_a i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n in_o this_o place_n to_o alter_v the_o plain_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n for_o that_o the_o plain_a sense_n of_o they_o may_v very_o well_o stand_v in_o this_o place_n conceive_v that_o in_o their_o plain_a sense_n they_o be_v as_o true_a as_o in_o that_o other_o sense_n which_o my_o opposer_n will_v put_v upon_o they_o without_o any_o just_a occasion_n so_o to_o do_v and_o hence_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o conclude_v upon_o this_o text_n that_o there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o separable_a intelligent_a soul_n in_o man_n as_o mr._n w._n have_v all_o along_o pretend_v in_o our_o second_o text_n david_n exhort_v not_o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o riches_n or_o glory_n of_o any_o man_n for_o when_o he_o die_v he_o shall_v carry_v nothing_o away_o with_o he_o he_o count_v himself_o and_o other_o man_n count_v he_o happy_a whilst_o he_o live_v but_o his_o happiness_n end_v with_o his_o life_n for_o man_n be_v in_o honour_n have_v no_o understanding_n but_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o beast_n that_o perish_v let_v man_n be_v as_o rich_a wise_a and_o happy_a and_o as_o much_o in_o honour_n as_o this_o world_n can_v afford_v yet_o all_o these_o preeminence_n end_n with_o his_o life_n and_o it_o seem_v so_o also_o do_v his_o misery_n and_o die_v or_o dead_a he_o may_v be_v compare_v to_o the_o beast_n that_o perish_v his_o breath_n go_v forth_o and_o he_o turn_v again_o to_o the_o earth_n from_o whence_o he_o be_v take_v and_o so_o also_o it_o be_v with_o the_o beast_n that_o perish_v hence_o it_o seem_v that_o solomon_n shall_v have_v be_v the_o first_o person_n who_o start_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n go_v upward_o and_o the_o spirit_n of_o beast_n downward_o or_o not_o and_o after_o not_o know_v well_o what_o become_v of_o the_o spirit_n or_o breath_n which_o go_v forth_o of_o a_o man_n at_o death_n he_o say_v transient_o and_o without_o any_o deliberation_n that_o appear_v this_o spirit_n or_o breath_n return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o but_o of_o such_o a_o spirit_n or_o the_o return_n thereof_o we_o meet_v with_o no_o mention_n in_o scripture_n before_o his_o time_n that_o i_o have_v yet_o find_v out_o and_o i_o be_o therefore_o ready_a to_o conclude_v with_o my_o quote_v text_n out_o of_o david_n that_o though_o man_n be_v have_v in_o honour_n during_o their_o life_n yet_o at_o and_o after_o death_n they_o may_v as_o concern_v their_o natural_a estate_n be_v true_o and_o reasonable_o compare_v to_o the_o beast_n that_o perish_v my_o four_o objection_n against_o mr._n w_n tenet_n i_o take_v from_o solomon_n eccles_n 4._o that_o wise_a king_n see_v great_a and_o remediless_a oppression_n impose_v on_o